Versione ebook di Readme.it powered by Softwarehouse.it    ADVENTURE 
by Jack London 
CHAPTER I--SOMETHING TO BE DONE 
He was a very sick white man. He rode pick-a-back on a woollyheaded
black-skinned savagethe lobes of whose ears had been 
pierced and stretched until one had torn outwhile the other 
carried a circular block of carved wood three inches in diameter. 
The torn ear had been pierced againbut this time not so 
ambitiouslyfor the hole accommodated no more than a short clay 
pipe. The man-horse was greasy and dirtyand naked save for an 
exceedingly narrow and dirty loin-cloth; but the white man clung to 
him closely and desperately. At timesfrom weaknesshis head 
drooped and rested on the woolly pate. At other times he lifted 
his head and stared with swimming eyes at the cocoanut palms that 
reeled and swung in the shimmering heat. He was clad in a thin 
undershirt and a strip of cotton cloththat wrapped about his 
waist and descended to his knees. On his head was a battered 
Stetsonknown to the trade as a Baden-Powell. About his middle 
was strapped a beltwhich carried a large-calibred automatic 
pistol and several spare clipsloaded and ready for quick work. 
The rear was brought up by a black boy of fourteen or fifteenwho 
carried medicine bottlesa pail of hot waterand various other 
hospital appurtenances. They passed out of the compound through a 
small wicker gateand went on under the blazing sunwinding about 
among new-planted cocoanuts that threw no shade. There was not a 
breath of windand the superheatedstagnant air was heavy with 
pestilence. From the direction they were going arose a wild 
clamouras of lost souls wailing and of men in torment. A long
low shed showed aheadgrass-walled and grass-thatchedand it was 
from here that the noise proceeded. There were shrieks and 
screamssome unmistakably of griefothers unmistakably of 
unendurable pain. As the white man drew closer he could hear a low 
and continuous moaning and groaning. He shuddered at the thought 
of enteringand for a moment was quite certain that he was going 
to faint. For that most dreaded of Solomon Island scourges
dysenteryhad struck Berande plantationand he was all alone to 
cope with it. Alsohe was afflicted himself. 
By stooping closestill on man-backhe managed to pass through 
the low doorway. He took a small bottle from his followerand 
sniffed strong ammonia to clear his senses for the ordeal. Then he 
shoutedShut up!and the clamour stilled. A raised platform of 
forest slabssix feet widewith a slight pitchextended the full 
length of the shed. Alongside of it was a yard-wide run-way. 
Stretched on the platformside by side and crowded closelay a 
score of blacks. That they were low in the order of human life was 
apparent at a glance. They were man-eaters. Their faces were 
asymmetricalbestial; their bodies were ugly and ape-like. They 
wore nose-rings of clam-shell and turtle-shelland from the ends 
of their noses which were also piercedprojected horns of beads 
strung on stiff wire. Their ears were pierced and distended to 
accommodate wooden plugs and stickspipesand all manner of 
barbaric ornaments. Their faces and bodies were tattooed or 
scarred in hideous designs. In their sickness they wore no 
clothingnot even loin-clothsthough they retained their shell 
armletstheir bead necklacesand their leather beltsbetween 
which and the skin were thrust naked knives. The bodies of many 
were covered with horrible sores. Swarms of flies rose and 
settledor flew back and forth in clouds. 
The white man went down the linedosing each man with medicine. 
To some he gave chlorodyne. He was forced to concentrate with all 
his will in order to remember which of them could stand 
ipecacuanhaand which of them were constitutionally unable to 
retain that powerful drug. One who lay dead he ordered to be 
carried out. He spoke in the sharpperemptory manner of a man who 
would take no nonsenseand the well men who obeyed his orders 
scowled malignantly. One muttered deep in his chest as he took the 
corpse by the feet. The white man exploded in speech and action. 
It cost him a painful effortbut his arm shot outlanding a backhand 
blow on the black's mouth. 
What name you, Angara?he shouted. "What for talk 'long youeh? 
I knock seven bells out of youtoo muchquick!" 
With the automatic swiftness of a wild animal the black gathered 
himself to spring. The anger of a wild animal was in his eyes; but 
he saw the white man's hand dropping to the pistol in his belt. 
The spring was never made. The tensed body relaxedand the black
stooping over the corpsehelped carry it out. This time there was 
no muttering. 
Swine!the white man gritted out through his teeth at the whole 
breed of Solomon Islanders. 
He was very sickthis white manas sick as the black men who lay 
helpless about himand whom he attended. He never kneweach time 
he entered the festering shambleswhether or not he would be able 
to complete the round. But he did know in large degree of 
certainty thatif he ever fainted there in the midst of the 
blacksthose who were able would be at his throat like ravening 
wolves. 
Part way down the line a man was dying. He gave orders for his 
removal as soon as he had breathed his last. A black stuck his 
head inside the shed doorsaying
Four fella sick too much.
Fresh casesstill able to walkthey clustered about the 
spokesman. The white man singled out the weakestand put him in 
the place just vacated by the corpse. Alsohe indicated the next 
weakesttelling him to wait for a place until the next man died. 
Thenordering one of the well men to take a squad from the fieldforce 
and build a lean-to addition to the hospitalhe continued 
along the run-wayadministering medicine and cracking jokes in 
beche-de-mer English to cheer the sufferers. Now and againfrom 
the far enda weird wail was raised. When he arrived there he 
found the noise was emitted by a boy who was not sick. The white 
man's wrath was immediate. 
What name you sing out alla time?he demanded. 
Him fella my brother belong me,was the answer. "Him fella die 
too much." 
You sing out, him fella brother belong you die too much,the 
white man went on in threatening tones. "I cross too much along 
you. What name you sing outeh? You fat-head make um brother 
belong you die dose up too much. You fella finish sing out
savvee? You fella no finish sing out I make finish damn quick." 
He threatened the wailer with his fistand the black cowered down
glaring at him with sullen eyes. 
Sing out no good little bit,the white man went onmore gently. 
You no sing out. You chase um fella fly. Too much strong fella 
fly. You catch water, washee brother belong you; washee plenty too 
much, bime bye brother belong you all right. Jump!he shouted 
fiercely at the endhis will penetrating the low intelligence of 
the black with dynamic force that made him jump to the task of 
brushing the loathsome swarms of flies away. 
Again he rode out into the reeking heat. He clutched the black's 
neck tightlyand drew a long breath; but the dead air seemed to 
shrivel his lungsand he dropped his head and dozed till the house 
was reached. Every effort of will was tortureyet he was called 
upon continually to make efforts of will. He gave the black he had 
ridden a nip of trade-gin. Viaburithe house-boybrought him 
corrosive sublimate and waterand he took a thorough antiseptic 
wash. He dosed himself with chlorodynetook his own pulsesmoked 
a thermometerand lay back on the couch with a suppressed groan. 
It was mid-afternoonand he had completed his third round that 
day. He called the house-boy. 
Take um big fella look along Jessie,he commanded. 
The boy carried the long telescope out on the verandaand searched 
the sea. 
One fella schooner long way little bit,he announced. "One fella 
Jessie." 
The white man gave a little gasp of delight. 
You make um Jessie, five sticks tobacco along you,he said. 
There was silence for a timeduring which he waited with eager 
impatience. 
Maybe Jessie, maybe other fella schooner,came the faltering 
admission. 
The man wormed to the edge of the couchand slipped off to the 
floor on his knees. By means of a chair he drew himself to his 
feet. Still clinging to the chairsupporting most of his weight 
on ithe shoved it to the door and out upon the veranda. The 
sweat from the exertion streamed down his face and showed through 
the undershirt across his shoulders. He managed to get into the 
chairwhere he panted in a state of collapse. In a few minutes he 
roused himself. The boy held the end of the telescope against one 
of the veranda scantlingswhile the man gazed through it at the 
sea. At last he picked up the white sails of the schooner and 
studied them. 
No Jessie,he said very quietly. "That's the Malakula." 
He changed his seat for a steamer reclining-chair. Three hundred 
feet away the sea broke in a small surf upon the beach. To the 
left he could see the white line of breakers that marked the bar of 
the Balesuna Riverandbeyondthe rugged outline of Savo Island. 
Directly before himacross the twelve-mile channellay Florida 
Island; andfarther to the rightdim in the distancehe could 
make out portions of Malaita--the savage islandthe abode of 
murderand robberyand man-eating--the place from which his own 
two hundred plantation hands had been recruited. Between him and 
the beach was the cane-grass fence of the compound. The gate was 
ajarand he sent the house-boy to close it. Within the fence grew 
a number of lofty cocoanut palms. On either side the path that led 
to the gate stood two tall flagstaffs. They were reared on 
artificial mounds of earth that were ten feet high. The base of 
each staff was surrounded by short postspainted white and 
connected by heavy chains. The staffs themselves were like ships' 
mastswith topmasts spliced on in true nautical fashionwith 
shroudsratlinesgaffsand flag-halyards. From the gaff of one
two gay flags hung limplyone a checkerboard of blue and white 
squaresthe other a white pennant centred with a red disc. It was 
the international code signal of distress. 
On the far corner of the compound fence a hawk brooded. The man 
watched itand knew that it was sick. He wondered idly if it felt 
as bad as he feltand was feebly amused at the thought of kinship 
that somehow penetrated his fancy. He roused himself to order the 
great bell to be rung as a signal for the plantation hands to cease 
work and go to their barracks. Then he mounted his man-horse and 
made the last round of the day. 
In the hospital were two new cases. To these he gave castor-oil. 
He congratulated himself. It had been an easy day. Only three had 
died. He inspected the copra-drying that had been going onand 
went through the barracks to see if there were any sick lying 
hidden and defying his rule of segregation. Returned to the house
he received the reports of the boss-boys and gave instructions for 
next day's work. The boat's crew boss also he had into give 
assuranceas was the custom nightlythat the whale-boats were 
hauled up and padlocked. This was a most necessary precautionfor 
the blacks were in a funkand a whale-boat left lying on the beach 
in the evening meant a loss of twenty blacks by morning. Since the 
blacks were worth thirty dollars apieceor lessaccording to how 
much of their time had been worked outBerande plantation could 
ill afford the loss. Besideswhale-boats were not cheap in the 
Solomons; andalsothe deaths were daily reducing the working 
capital. Seven blacks had fled into the bush the week beforeand 
four had dragged themselves backhelpless from feverwith the 
report that two more had been killed and kai-kai'd {1} by the 
hospitable bushmen. The seventh man was still at largeand was 
said to be working along the coast on the lookout to steal a canoe 
and get away to his own island. 
Viaburi brought two lighted lanterns to the white man for 
inspection. He glanced at them and saw that they were burning 
brightly with clearbroad flamesand nodded his head. One was 
hoisted up to the gaff of the flagstaffand the other was placed 
on the wide veranda. They were the leading lights to the Berande 
anchorageand every night in the year they were so inspected and 
hung out. 
He rolled back on his couch with a sigh of relief. The day's work 
was done. A rifle lay on the couch beside him. His revolver was 
within reach of his hand. An hour passedduring which he did not 
move. He lay in a state of half-slumberhalf-coma. He became 
suddenly alert. A creak on the back veranda was the cause. The 
room was L-shaped; the corner in which stood his couch was dimbut 
the hanging lamp in the main part of the roomover the billiard 
table and just around the cornerso that it did not shine on him
was burning brightly. Likewise the verandas were well lighted. He 
waited without movement. The creaks were repeatedand he knew 
several men lurked outside. 
What name?he cried sharply. 
The houseraised a dozen feet above the groundshook on its pile 
foundations to the rush of retreating footsteps. 
They're getting bold,he muttered. "Something will have to be 
done." 
The full moon rose over Malaita and shone down on Berande. Nothing 
stirred in the windless air. From the hospital still proceeded the 
moaning of the sick. In the grass-thatched barracks nearly two 
hundred woolly-headed man-eaters slept off the weariness of the 
day's toilthough several lifted their heads to listen to the 
curses of one who cursed the white man who never slept. On the 
four verandas of the house the lanterns burned. Insidebetween 
rifle and revolverthe man himself moaned and tossed in intervals 
of troubled sleep. 
CHAPTER II--SOMETHING IS DONE 
In the morning David Sheldon decided that he was worse. That he 
was appreciably weaker there was no doubtand there were other 
symptoms that were unfavourable. He began his rounds looking for 
trouble. He wanted trouble. In full healththe strained 
situation would have been serious enough; but as it washimself 
growing helplesssomething had to be done. The blacks were 
getting more sullen and defiantand the appearance of the men the 
previous night on his veranda--one of the gravest of offences on 
Berande--was ominous. Sooner or later they would get himif he 
did not get them firstif he did not once again sear on their dark 
souls the flaming mastery of the white man. 
He returned to the house disappointed. No opportunity had 
presented itself of making an example of insolence or 
insubordination--such as had occurred on every other day since the 
sickness smote Berande. The fact that none had offended was in 
itself suspicious. They were growing crafty. He regretted that he 
had not waited the night before until the prowlers had entered. 
Then he might have shot one or two and given the rest a new lesson
writ in redfor them to con. It was one man against two hundred
and he was horribly afraid of his sickness overpowering him and 
leaving him at their mercy. He saw visions of the blacks taking 
charge of the plantationlooting the storeburning the buildings
and escaping to Malaita. Alsoone gruesome vision he caught of 
his own headsun-dried and smoke-curedornamenting the canoe 
house of a cannibal village. Either the Jessie would have to 
arriveor he would have to do something. 
The bell had hardly rungsending the labourers into the fields
when Sheldon had a visitor. He had had the couch taken out on the 
verandaand he was lying on it when the canoes paddled in and 
hauled out on the beach. Forty menarmed with spearsbows and 
arrowsand war-clubsgathered outside the gate of the compound
but only one entered. They knew the law of Berandeas every 
native knew the law of every white man's compound in all the 
thousand miles of the far-flung Solomons. The one man who came up 
the pathSheldon recognized as Seeleethe chief of Balesuna 
village. The savage did not mount the stepsbut stood beneath and 
talked to the white lord above. 
Seelee was more intelligent than the average of his kindbut his 
intelligence only emphasized the lowness of that kind. His eyes
close together and smalladvertised cruelty and craftiness. A 
gee-string and a cartridge-belt were all the clothes he wore. The 
carved pearl-shell ornament that hung from nose to chin and impeded 
speech was purely ornamentalas were the holes in his ears mere 
utilities for carrying pipe and tobacco. His broken-fanged teeth 
were stained black by betel-nutthe juice of which he spat upon 
the ground. 
As he talked or listenedhe made grimaces like a monkey. He said 
yes by dropping his eyelids and thrusting his chin forward. He 
spoke with childish arrogance strangely at variance with the 
subservient position he occupied beneath the veranda. Hewith his 
many followerswas lord and master of Balesuna village. But the 
white manwithout followerswas lord and master of Berande--ay
and on occasionsingle-handedhad made himself lord and master of 
Balesuna village as well. Seelee did not like to remember that 
episode. It had occurred in the course of learning the nature of 
white men and of learning to abominate them. He had once been 
guilty of sheltering three runaways from Berande. They had given 
him all they possessed in return for the shelter and for promised 
aid in getting away to Malaita. This had given him a glimpse of a 
profitable futurein which his village would serve as the one 
depot on the underground railway between Berande and Malaita. 
Unfortunatelyhe was ignorant of the ways of white men. This 
particular white man educated him by arriving at his grass house in 
the gray of dawn. In the first moment he had felt amused. He was 
so perfectly safe in the midst of his village. But the next 
momentand before he could cry outa pair of handcuffs on the 
white man's knuckles had landed on his mouthknocking the cry of 
alarm back down his throat. Alsothe white man's other fist had 
caught him under the ear and left him without further interest in 
what was happening. When he came tohe found himself in the white 
man's whale-boat on the way to Berande. At Berande he had been 
treated as one of no consequencewith handcuffs on hands and feet
to say nothing of chains. When his tribe had returned the three 
runawayshe was given his freedom. And finallythe terrible 
white man had fined him and Balesuna village ten thousand 
cocoanuts. After that he had sheltered no more runaway Malaita 
men. Insteadhe had gone into the business of catching them. It 
was safer. Besideshe was paid one case of tobacco per head. But 
if he ever got a chance at that white manif he ever caught him 
sick or stood at his back when he stumbled and fell on a bushtrail--
wellthere would be a head that would fetch a price in 
Malaita. 
Sheldon was pleased with what Seelee told him. The seventh man of 
the last batch of runaways had been caught and was even then at the 
gate. He was brought inheavy-featured and defianthis arms 
bound with cocoanut sennitthe dry blood still on his body from 
the struggle with his captors. 
Me savvee you good fella, Seelee,Sheldon saidas the chief 
gulped down a quarter-tumbler of raw trade-gin. "Fella boy belong 
me you catch short time little bit. This fella boy strong fella 
too much. I give you fella one case tobacco--my wordone case 
tobacco. Thenyou good fella along meI give you three fathom 
calicoone fella knife big fella too much." 
The tobacco and trade goods were brought from the store-room by two 
house-boys and turned over to the chief of Balesuna villagewho 
accepted the additional reward with a non-committal grunt and went 
away down the path to his canoes. Under Sheldon's directions the 
house-boys handcuffed the prisonerby hands and feetaround one 
of the pile supports of the house. At eleven o'clockwhen the 
labourers came in from the fieldSheldon had them assembled in the 
compound before the veranda. Every able man was thereincluding 
those who were helping about the hospital. Even the women and the 
several pickaninnies of the plantation were lined up with the rest
two deep--a horde of naked savages a trifle under two hundred 
strong. In addition to their ornaments of bead and shell and bone
their pierced ears and nostrils were burdened with safety-pins
wire nailsmetal hair-pinsrusty iron handles of cooking 
utensilsand the patent keys for opening corned beef tins. Some 
wore penknives clasped on their kinky locks for safety. On the 
chest of one a china door-knob was suspendedon the chest of 
another the brass wheel of an alarm clock. 
Facing themclinging to the railing of the veranda for support
stood the sick white man. Any one of them could have knocked him 
over with the blow of a little finger. Despite his firearmsthe 
gang could have rushed him and delivered that blowwhen his head 
and the plantation would have been theirs. Hatred and murder and 
lust for revenge they possessed to overflowing. But one thing they 
lackedthe thing that he possessedthe flame of mastery that 
would not quenchthat burned fiercely as ever in the diseasewasted 
bodyand that was ever ready to flare forth and scorch and 
singe them with its ire. 
Narada! Billy!Sheldon called sharply. 
Two men slunk unwillingly forward and waited. 
Sheldon gave the keys of the handcuffs to a house-boywho went 
under the house and loosed the prisoner. 
You fella Narada, you fella Billy, take um this fella boy along 
tree and make fast, hands high up,was Sheldon's command. 
While this was being doneslowlyamidst mutterings and 
restlessness on the part of the onlookersone of the house-boys 
fetched a heavy-handledheavy-lashed whip. Sheldon began a 
speech. 
This fella Arunga, me cross along him too much. I no steal this 
fella Arunga. I no gammon. I say, 'All right, you come along me 
Berande, work three fella year.' He say, 'All right, me come along 
you work three fella year.' He come. He catch plenty good fella 
kai-kai, {2} plenty good fella money. What name he run away? Me 
too much cross along him. I knock what name outa him fella. I pay 
Seelee, big fella master along Balesuna, one case tobacco catch 
that fella Arunga. All right. Arunga pay that fella case tobacco. 
Six pounds that fella Arunga pay. Alle same one year more that 
fella Arunga work Berande. All right. Now he catch ten fella whip 
three times. You fella Billy catch whip, give that fella Arunga 
ten fella three times. All fella boys look see, all fella Marys 
{3} look see; bime bye, they like run away they think strong fella 
too much, no run away. Billy, strong fella too much ten fella 
three times.
The house-boy extended the whip to himbut Billy did not take it. 
Sheldon waited quietly. The eyes of all the cannibals were fixed 
upon him in doubt and fear and eagerness. It was the moment of 
testwhereby the lone white man was to live or be lost.
Ten fella three times, Billy,Sheldon said encouraginglythough 
there was a certain metallic rasp in his voice. 
Billy scowledlooked up and looked downbut did not move. 
Billy!
Sheldon's voice exploded like a pistol shot. The savage started 
physically. Grins overspread the grotesque features of the 
audienceand there was a sound of tittering. 
S'pose you like too much lash that fella Arunga, you take him 
fella Tulagi,Billy said. "One fella government agent make plenty 
lash. That um fella law. Me savvee um fella law." 
It was the lawand Sheldon knew it. But he wanted to live this 
day and the next day and not to die waiting for the law to operate 
the next week or the week after. 
Too much talk along you!he cried angrily. "What name eh? What 
name?" 
Me savvee law,the savage repeated stubbornly. 
Astoa!
Another man stepped forward in almost a sprightly way and glanced 
insolently up. Sheldon was selecting the worst characters for the 
lesson. 
You fella Astoa, you fella Narada, tie up that fella Billy 
alongside other fella same fella way.
Strong fella tie,he cautioned them. 
You fella Astoa take that fella whip. Plenty strong big fella too 
much ten fella three times. Savvee!
No,Astoa grunted. 
Sheldon picked up the rifle that had leaned against the railand 
cocked it. 
I know you, Astoa,he said calmly. "You work along Queensland 
six years." 
Me fella missionary,the black interrupted with deliberate 
insolence. 
Queensland you stop jail one fella year. White fella master damn 
fool no hang you. You too much bad fella. Queensland you stop 
jail six months two fella time. Two fella time you steal. All 
right, you missionary. You savvee one fella prayer?
Yes, me savvee prayer,was the reply. 
All right, then you pray now, short time little bit. You say one 
fella prayer damn quick, then me kill you.
Sheldon held the rifle on him and waited. The black glanced around 
at his fellowsbut none moved to aid him. They were intent upon 
the coming spectaclestaring fascinated at the white man with 
death in his hands who stood alone on the great veranda. Sheldon 
has wonand he knew it. Astoa changed his weight irresolutely 
from one foot to the other. He looked at the white manand saw 
his eyes gleaming level along the sights. 
Astoa,Sheldon saidseizing the psychological momentI count 
three fella time. Then I shoot you fella dead, good-bye, all 
finish you.
And Sheldon knew that when he had counted three he would drop him 
in his tracks. The black knew ittoo. That was why Sheldon did 
not have to do itfor when he had counted oneAstoa reached out 
his hand and took the whip. And right well Astoa laid on the whip
angered at his fellows for not supporting him and venting his anger 
with every stroke. From the veranda Sheldon egged him on to strike 
with strengthtill the two triced savages screamed and howled 
while the blood oozed down their backs. The lesson was being well 
written in red. 
When the last of the gangincluding the two howling culpritshad 
passed out through the compound gateSheldon sank down halffainting 
on his couch. 
You're a sick man,he groaned. "A sick man." 
But you can sleep at ease to-night,he addedhalf an hour later. 
CHAPTER III--THE JESSIE 
Two days passedand Sheldon felt that he could not grow any weaker 
and livemuch less make his four daily rounds of the hospital. 
The deaths were averaging four a dayand there were more new cases 
than recoveries. The blacks were in a funk. Each onewhen taken 
sickseemed to make every effort to die. Once down on their backs 
they lacked the grit to make a struggle. They believed they were 
going to dieand they did their best to vindicate that belief. 
Even those that were well were sure that it was only a mater of 
days when the sickness would catch them and carry them off. And 
yetbelieving this with absolute convictionthey somehow lacked 
the nerve to rush the frail wraith of a man with the white skin and 
escape from the charnel house by the whale-boats. They chose the 
lingering death they were sure awaited themrather than the 
immediate death they were very sure would pounce upon them if they 
went up against the master. That he never sleptthey knew. That 
he could not be conjured to deaththey were equally sure--they had 
tried it. And even the sickness that was sweeping them off could 
not kill him. 
With the whipping in the compounddiscipline had improved. They 
cringed under the iron hand of the white man. They gave their 
scowls or malignant looks with averted faces or when his back was 
turned. They saved their mutterings for the barracks at night
where he could not hear. And there were no more runaways and no 
more night-prowlers on the veranda. 
Dawn of the third day after the whipping brought the Jessie's white 
sails in sight. Eight miles awayit was not till two in the 
afternoon that the light air-fans enabled her to drop anchor a 
quarter of a mile off the shore. The sight of her gave Sheldon 
fresh courageand the tedious hours of waiting did not irk him. 
He gave his orders to the boss-boys and made his regular trips to 
the hospital. Nothing mattered now. His troubles were at an end. 
He could lie down and take care of himself and proceed to get well. 
The Jessie had arrived. His partner was on boardvigorous and 
hearty from six weeks' recruiting on Malaita. He could take charge 
nowand all would be well with Berande. 
Sheldon lay in the steamer-chair and watched the Jessie's whaleboat 
pull in for the beach. He wondered why only three sweeps were 
pullingand he wondered still more whenbeachedthere was so 
much delay in getting out of the boat. Then he understood. The 
three blacks who had been pulling started up the beach with a 
stretcher on their shoulders. A white manwhom he recognized as 
the Jessie's captainwalked in front and opened the gatethen 
dropped behind to close it. Sheldon knew that it was Hughie 
Drummond who lay in the stretcherand a mist came before his eyes. 
He felt an overwhelming desire to die. The disappointment was too 
great. In his own state of terrible weakness he felt that it was 
impossible to go on with his task of holding Berande plantation 
tight-gripped in his fist. Then the will of him flamed up again
and he directed the blacks to lay the stretcher beside him on the 
floor. Hughie Drummondwhom he had last seen in healthwas an 
emaciated skeleton. His closed eyes were deep-sunken. The 
shrivelled lips had fallen away from the teethand the cheek-bones 
seemed bursting through the skin. Sheldon sent a house-boy for his 
thermometer and glanced questioningly at the captain. 
Black-water fever,the captain said. "He's been like this for 
six daysunconscious. And we've got dysentery on board. What's 
the matter with you?" 
I'm burying four a day,Sheldon answeredas he bent over from 
the steamer-chair and inserted the thermometer under his partner's 
tongue. 
Captain Oleson swore blasphemouslyand sent a house-boy to bring 
whisky and soda. Sheldon glanced at the thermometer. 
One hundred and seven,he said. "Poor Hughie." 
Captain Oleson offered him some whisky. 
Couldn't think of it--perforation, you know,Sheldon said. 
He sent for a boss-boy and ordered a grave to be dugalso some of 
the packing-cases to be knocked together into a coffin. The blacks 
did not get coffins. They were buried as they diedbeing carted 
on a sheet of galvanized ironin their nakednessfrom the 
hospital to the hole in the ground. Having given the orders
Sheldon lay back in his chair with closed eyes. 
It's ben fair hell, sir,Captain Oleson beganthen broke off to 
help himself to more whisky. "It's ben fair hellMr. SheldonI 
tell you. Contrary winds and calms. We've ben driftin' all about 
the shop for ten days. There's ten thousand sharks following us 
for the tucker we've ben throwin' over to them. They was snappin' 
at the oars when we started to come ashore. I wisht to God a 
nor'wester'd come along an' blow the Solomons clean to hell." 
We got it from the water--water from Owga creek. Filled my casks 
with it. How was we to know? I've filled there before an' it was 
all right. We had sixty recruits-full up; and my crew of fifteen. 
We've ben buryin' them day an' night. The beggars won't live, damn 
them! They die out of spite. Only three of my crew left on its 
legs. Five more down. Seven dead. Oh, hell! What's the good of 
talkin'?
How many recruits left?Sheldon asked. 
Lost half. Thirty left. Twenty down, and ten tottering around.
Sheldon sighed. 
That means another addition to the hospital. We've got to get 
them ashore somehow.--Viaburi! Hey, you, Viaburi, ring big fella 
bell strong fella too much.
The handscalled in from the fields at that unwonted hourwere 
split into detachments. Some were sent into the woods to cut 
timber for house-beamsothers to cutting cane-grass for thatching
and forty of them lifted a whale-boat above their heads and carried 
it down to the sea. Sheldon had gritted his teethpulled his 
collapsing soul togetherand taken Berande plantation into his 
fist once more. 
Have you seen the barometer?Captain Oleson askedpausing at the 
bottom of the steps on his way to oversee the disembarkation of the 
sick. 
No,Sheldon answered. "Is it down?" 
It's going down.
Then you'd better sleep aboard to-night,was Sheldon's judgment. 
Never mind the funeral. I'll see to poor Hughie.
A nigger was kicking the bucket when I dropped anchor.
The captain made the statement as a simple factbut obviously 
waited for a suggestion. The other felt a sudden wave of 
irritation rush through him. 
Dump him over,he cried. "Great Godman! don't you think I've 
got enough graves ashore?" 
I just wanted to know, that was all,the captain answeredin no 
wise offended. 
Sheldon regretted his childishness. 
Oh, Captain Oleson,he called. "If you can see your way to it
come ashore to-morrow and lend me a hand. If you can'tsend the 
mate." 
Right O. I'll come myself. Mr. Johnson's dead, sir. I forgot to 
tell you--three days ago.
Sheldon watched the Jessie's captain go down the pathwith waving 
arms and loud curses calling upon God to sink the Solomons. Next
Sheldon noted the Jessie rolling lazily on the glassy swelland 
beyondin the north-westhigh over Florida Islandan alpine 
chain of dark-massed clouds. Then he turned to his partner
calling for boys to carry him into the house. But Hughie Drummond 
had reached the end. His breathing was imperceptible. By mere 
touchSheldon could ascertain that the dying man's temperature was 
going down. It must have been going down when the thermometer 
registered one hundred and seven. He had burned out. Sheldon 
knelt beside himthe house-boys grouped aroundtheir white 
singlets and loin-cloths peculiarly at variance with their dark 
skins and savage countenancestheir huge ear-plugs and carved and 
glistening nose-rings. Sheldon tottered to his feet at lastand 
half-fell into the steamer-chair. Oppressive as the heat had been
it was now even more oppressive. It was difficult to breathe. He 
panted for air. The faces and naked arms of the house-boys were 
beaded with sweat. 
Marster,one of them venturedbig fella wind he come, strong 
fella too much.
Sheldon nodded his head but did not look. Much as he had loved 
Hughie Drummondhis deathand the funeral it entailedseemed an 
intolerable burden to add to what he was already sinking under. He 
had a feeling--nayit was a certitude--that all he had to do was 
to shut his eyes and let goand that he would diesink into 
immensity of rest. He knew it; it was very simple. All he had to 
do was close his eyes and let go; for he had reached the stage 
where he lived by will alone. His weary body seemed torn by the 
oncoming pangs of dissolution. He was a fool to hang on. He had 
died a score of deaths alreadyand what was the use of prolonging 
it to two-score deaths before he really died. Not only was he not 
afraid to diebut he desired to die. His weary flesh and weary 
spirit desired itand why should the flame of him not go utterly 
out? 
But his mind that could will life or deathstill pulsed on. He 
saw the two whale-boats land on the beachand the sickon 
stretchers or pick-a-backgroaning and wailinggo by in 
lugubrious procession. He saw the wind making on the clouded 
horizonand thought of the sick in the hospital. Here was 
something waiting his hand to be doneand it was not in his nature 
to lie down and sleepor diewhen any task remained undone. 
The boss-boys were called and given their orders to rope down the 
hospital with its two additions. He remembered the spare anchorchain
new and black-paintedthat hung under the house suspended 
from the floor-beamsand ordered it to be used on the hospital as 
well. Other boys brought the coffina grotesque patchwork of 
packing-casesand under his directions they laid Hughie Drummond 
in it. Half a dozen boys carried it down the beachwhile he rode 
on the back of anotherhis arms around the black's neckone hand 
clutching a prayer-book. 
While he read the servicethe blacks gazed apprehensively at the 
dark line on the waterabove which rolled and tumbled the racing 
clouds. The first breath of the windfaint and silkentonic with 
lifefanned through his dry-baked body as he finished reading. 
Then came the second breath of the windan angry gustas the 
shovels worked rapidlyfilling in the sand. So heavy was the gust 
that Sheldonstill on his feetseized hold of his man-horse to 
escape being blown away. The Jessie was blotted outand a strange 
ominous sound arose as multitudinous wavelets struck foaming on the 
beach. It was like the bubbling of some colossal cauldron. From 
all about could be heard the dull thudding of falling cocoanuts. 
The talldelicate-trunked trees twisted and snapped about like 
whip-lashes. The air seemed filled with their flying leavesany 
one of whichstem-on could brain a man. Then came the raina 
delugea straighthorizontal sheet that poured along like a 
riverdefying gravitation. The blackwith Sheldon mounted on 
himplunged ahead into the thick of itstooping far forward and 
low to the ground to avoid being toppled over backward. 
'He's sleeping out and far to-night,'Sheldon quotedas he 
thought of the dead man in the sand and the rainwater trickling 
down upon the cold clay. 
So they fought their way back up the beach. The other blacks 
caught hold of the man-horse and pulled and tugged. There were 
among them those whose fondest desire was to drag the rider in the 
sand and spring upon him and mash him into repulsive nothingness. 
But the automatic pistol in his belt with its rattlingquickdealing 
deathand the automaticdeath-defying spirit in the man 
himselfmade them refrain and buckle down to the task of hauling 
him to safety through the storm. 
Wet through and exhaustedhe was nevertheless surprised at the 
ease with which he got into a change of clothing. Though he was 
fearfully weakhe found himself actually feeling better. The 
disease had spent itselfand the mend had begun. 
Now if I don't get the fever,he said aloudand at the same 
moment resolved to go to taking quinine as soon as he was strong 
enough to dare. 
He crawled out on the veranda. The rain had ceasedbut the wind
which had dwindled to a half-galewas increasing. A big sea had 
sprung upand the mile-long breakerscurling up to the over-fall 
two hundred yards from shorewere crashing on the beach. The 
Jessie was plunging madly to two anchorsand every second or third 
sea broke clear over her bow. Two flags were stiffly undulating 
from the halyards like squares of flexible sheet-iron. One was 
bluethe other red. He knew their meaning in the Berande private 
code--"What are your instructions? Shall I attempt to land boat?" 
Tacked on the wallbetween the signal locker and the billiard 
ruleswas the code itselfby which he verified the signal before 
making answer. On the flagstaff gaff a boy hoisted a white flag 
over a redwhich stood for--"Run to Neal Island for shelter." 
That Captain Oleson had been expecting this signal was apparent by 
the celerity with which the shackles were knocked out of both 
anchor-chains. He slipped his anchorsleaving them buoyed to be 
picked up in better weather. The Jessie swung off under her full 
staysailthen the foresaildouble-reefedwas run up. She was 
away like a racehorseclearing Balesuna Shoal with half a cablelength 
to spare. Just before she rounded the point she was 
swallowed up in a terrific squall that far out-blew the first. 
All that nightwhile squall after squall smote Berandeuprooting 
treesoverthrowing copra-shedsand rocking the house on its tall 
pilesSheldon slept. He was unaware of the commotion. He never 
wakened. Nor did he change his position or dream. He awokea new 
man. Furthermorehe was hungry. It was over a week since food 
had passed his lips. He drank a glass of condensed creamthinned 
with waterand by ten o'clock he dared to take a cup of beef-tea. 
He was cheeredalsoby the situation in the hospital. Despite 
the storm there had been but one deathand there was only one 
fresh casewhile half a dozen boys crawled weakly away to the 
barracks. He wondered if it was the wind that was blowing the 
disease away and cleansing the pestilential land. 
By eleven a messenger arrived from Balesuna villagedispatched by 
Seelee. The Jessie had gone ashore half-way between the village 
and Neal Island. It was not till nightfall that two of the crew 
arrivedreporting the drowning of Captain Oleson and of the one 
remaining boy. As for the Jessiefrom what they told him Sheldon 
could not but conclude that she was a total loss. Further to 
hearten himhe was taken by a shivering fit. In half an hour he 
was burning up. And he knew that at least another day must pass 
before he could undertake even the smallest dose of quinine. He 
crawled under a heap of blanketsand a little later found himself 
laughing aloud. He had surely reached the limit of disaster. 
Barring earthquake or tidal-wavethe worst had already befallen 
him. The Flibberty-Gibbet was certainly safe in Mboli Pass. Since 
nothing worse could happenthings simply had to mend. So it was
shivering under his blanketsthat he laugheduntil the houseboys
with heads togethermarvelled at the devils that were in 
him. 
CHAPTER IV--JOAN LACKLAND 
By the second day of the northwesterSheldon was in collapse from 
his fever. It had taken an unfair advantage of his weak stateand 
though it was only ordinary malarial feverin forty-eight hours it 
had run him as low as ten days of fever would have done when he was 
in condition. But the dysentery had been swept away from Berande. 
A score of convalescents lingered in the hospitalbut they were 
improving hourly. There had been but one more death--that of the 
man whose brother had wailed over him instead of brushing the flies 
away. 
On the morning of the fourth day of his feverSheldon lay on the 
verandagazing dimly out over the raging ocean. The wind was 
fallingbut a mighty sea was still thundering in on Berande beach
the flying spray reaching in as far as the flagstaff moundsthe 
foaming wash creaming against the gate-posts. He had taken thirty 
grains of quinineand the drug was buzzing in his ears like a nest 
of hornetsmaking his hands and knees trembleand causing a 
sickening palpitation of the stomach. Onceopening his eyeshe 
saw what he took to be an hallucination. Not far outand coming 
in across the Jessie's anchoragehe saw a whale-boat's nose thrust 
skyward on a smoky crest and disappear naturallyas an actual 
whale-boat's nose should disappearas it slid down the back of the 
sea. He knew that no whale-boat should be out thereand he was 
quite certain no men in the Solomons were mad enough to be abroad 
in such a storm. 
But the hallucination persisted. A minute laterchancing to open 
his eyeshe saw the whale-boatfull lengthand saw right into it 
as it rose on the face of a wave. He saw six sweeps at workand 
in the sternclearly outlined against the overhanging wall of 
whitea man who stood erectgiganticswaying with his weight on 
the steering-sweep. This he sawand an eighth man who crouched in 
the bow and gazed shoreward. But what startled Sheldon was the 
sight of a woman in the stern-sheetsbetween the stroke-oar and 
the steersman. A woman she wasfor a braid of her hair was 
flyingand she was just in the act of recapturing it and stowing 
it away beneath a hat that for all the world was like his own 
Baden-Powell.
The boat disappeared behind the waveand rose into view on the 
face of the following one. Again he looked into it. The men were 
dark-skinnedand larger than Solomon Islandersbut the womanhe 
could plainly seewas white. Who she wasand what she was doing 
therewere thoughts that drifted vaguely through his 
consciousness. He was too sick to be vitally interestedand
besideshe had a half feeling that it was all a dream; but he 
noted that the men were resting on their sweepswhile the woman 
and the steersman were intently watching the run of seas behind 
them. 
Good boatmen,was Sheldon's verdictas he saw the boat leap 
forward on the face of a huge breakerthe sweeps plying swiftly to 
keep her on that front of the moving mountain of water that raced 
madly for the shore. It was well done. Part full of waterthe 
boat was flung upon the beachthe men springing out and dragging 
its nose to the gate-posts. Sheldon had called vainly to the 
house-boyswhoat the momentwere dosing the remaining patients 
in the hospital. He knew he was unable to rise up and go down the 
path to meet the newcomersso he lay back in the steamer-chair
and watched for ages while they cared for the boat. The woman 
stood to one sideher hand resting on the gate. Occasionally 
surges of sea water washed over her feetwhich he could see were 
encased in rubber sea-boots. She scrutinized the house sharply
and for some time she gazed at him steadily. At lastspeaking to 
two of the menwho turned and followed hershe started up the 
path. 
Sheldon attempted to risegot half up out of his chairand fell 
back helplessly. He was surprised at the size of the menwho 
loomed like giants behind her. Both were six-footersand they 
were heavy in proportion. He had never seen islanders like them. 
They were not black like the Solomon Islandersbut light brown; 
and their features were largermore regularand even handsome. 
The woman--or girlratherhe decided--walked along the veranda 
toward him. The two men waited at the head of the stepswatching 
curiously. The girl was angry; he could see that. Her gray eyes 
were flashingand her lips were quivering. That she had a temper
was his thought. But the eyes were striking. He decided that they 
were not gray after allorat leastnot all gray. They were 
large and wide apartand they looked at him from under level 
brows. Her face was cameo-likeso clear cut was it. There were 
other striking things about her--the cowboy Stetson hatthe heavy 
braids of brown hairand the long-barrelled 38 Colt's revolver 
that hung in its holster on her hip. 
Pretty hospitality, I must say,was her greetingletting 
strangers sink or swim in your front yard.
I--I beg your pardon,he stammeredby a supreme effort dragging 
himself to his feet. 
His legs wobbled under himand with a suffocating sensation he 
began sinking to the floor. He was aware of a feeble gratification 
as he saw solicitude leap into her eyes; then blackness smote him
and at the moment of smiting him his thought was that at lastand 
for the first time in his lifehe had fainted. 
The ringing of the big bell aroused him. He opened his eyes and 
found that he was on the couch indoors. A glance at the clock told 
him that it was sixand from the direction the sun's rays streamed 
into the room he knew that it was morning. At first he puzzled 
over something untoward he was sure had happened. Then on the wall 
he saw a Stetson hat hangingand beneath it a full cartridge-belt 
and a long-barrelled 38 Colt's revolver. The slender girth of the 
belt told its feminine storyand he remembered the whale-boat of 
the day before and the gray eyes that flashed beneath the level 
brows. She it must have been who had just rung the bell. The 
cares of the plantation rushed upon himand he sat up in bed
clutching at the wall for support as the mosquito screen lurched 
dizzily around him. He was still sitting thereholding onwith 
eyes closedstriving to master his giddinesswhen he heard her 
voice. 
You'll lie right down again, sir,she said. 
It was sharply imperativea voice used to command. At the same 
time one hand pressed him back toward the pillow while the other 
caught him from behind and eased him down. 
You've been unconscious for twenty-four hours now,she went on
and I have taken charge. When I say the word you'll get up, and 
not until then. Now, what medicine do you take?--quinine? Here 
are ten grains. That's right. You'll make a good patient.
My dear madame,he began. 
You musn't speak,she interruptedthat is, in protest. 
Otherwise, you can talk.
But the plantation--
A dead man is of no use on a plantation. Don't you want to know 
about ME? My vanity is hurt. Here am I, just through my first 
shipwreck; and here are you, not the least bit curious, talking 
about your miserable plantation. Can't you see that I am just 
bursting to tell somebody, anybody, about my shipwreck?
He smiled; it was the first time in weeks. And he smilednot so 
much at what she saidas at the way she said it--the whimsical 
expression of her facethe laughter in her eyesand the several 
tiny lines of humour that drew in at the corners. He was curiously 
wondering as to what her age wasas he said aloud: 
Yes, tell me, please.
That I will not--not now,she retortedwith a toss of the head. 
I'll find somebody to tell my story to who does not have to be 
asked. Also, I want information. I managed to find out what time 
to ring the bell to turn the hands to, and that is about all. I 
don't understand the ridiculous speech of your people. What time 
do they knock off?
At eleven--go on again at one.
That will do, thank you. And now, where do you keep the key to 
the provisions? I want to feed my men.
Your men!he gasped. "On tinned goods! Nono. Let them go out 
and eat with my boys." 
Her eyes flashed as on the day beforeand he saw again the 
imperative expression on her face. 
That I won't; my men are MEN. I've been out to your miserable 
barracks and watched them eat. Faugh! Potatoes! Nothing but 
potatoes! No salt! Nothing! Only potatoes! I may have been 
mistaken, but I thought I understood them to say that that was all 
they ever got to eat. Two meals a day and every day in the week?
He nodded.
Well, my men wouldn't stand that for a single day, much less a
whole week. Where is the key?
Hanging on that clothes-hook under the clock.
He gave it easily enoughbut as she was reaching down the key she 
heard him say: 
Fancy niggers and tinned provisions.
This time she really was angry. The blood was in her cheeks as she 
turned on him. 
My men are not niggers. The sooner you understand that the better 
for our acquaintance. As for the tinned goods, I'll pay for all 
they eat. Please don't worry about that. Worry is not good for 
you in your condition. And I won't stay any longer than I have to-
just long enough to get you on your feet, and not go away with the 
feeling of having deserted a white man.
You're American, aren't you?he asked quietly. 
The question disconcerted her for the moment. 
Yes,she vouchsafedwith a defiant look. "Why?" 
Nothing. I merely thought so.
Anything further?
He shook his head. 
Why?he asked. 
Oh, nothing. I thought you might have something pleasant to say.
My name is Sheldon, David Sheldon,he saidwith direct 
relevanceholding out a thin hand. 
Her hand started out impulsivelythen checked. "My name is 
LacklandJoan Lackland." The hand went out. "And let us be 
friends." 
It could not be otherwise--he began lamely. 
And I can feed my men all the tinned goods I want?she rushed on. 
Till the cows come home,he answeredattempting her own 
lightnessthen addingthat is, to Berande. You see we don't 
have any cows at Berande.
She fixed him coldly with her eyes. 
Is that a joke?she demanded. 
I really don't know--I--I thought it was, but then, you see, I'm 
sick.
You're English, aren't you?was her next query.
Now that's too much, even for a sick man,he cried. "You know
well enough that I am." 
Oh,she said absentlythen you are?
He frownedtightened his lipsthen burst into laughterin which 
she joined. 
It's my own fault,he confessed. "I shouldn't have baited you. 
I'll be careful in the future." 
In the meantime go on laughing, and I'll see about breakfast. Is 
there anything you would fancy?
He shook his head. 
It will do you good to eat something. Your fever has burned out, 
and you are merely weak. Wait a moment.
She hurried out of the room in the direction of the kitchen
tripped at the door in a pair of sandals several sizes too large 
for her feetand disappeared in rosy confusion. 
By Jove, those are my sandals,he thought to himself. "The girl 
hasn't a thing to wear except what she landed on the beach inand 
she certainly landed in sea-boots." 
CHAPTER V--SHE WOULD A PLANTER BE 
Sheldon mended rapidly. The fever had burned outand there was 
nothing for him to do but gather strength. Joan had taken the cook 
in handand for the first timeas Sheldon remarkedthe chop at 
Berande was white man's chop. With her own hands Joan prepared the 
sick man's foodand between that and the cheer she brought himhe 
was ableafter two daysto totter feebly out upon the veranda. 
The situation struck him as strangeand stranger still was the 
fact that it did not seem strange to the girl at all. She had 
settled down and taken charge of the household as a matter of 
courseas if he were her fatheror brotheror as if she were a 
man like himself. 
It is just too delightful for anything,she assured him. "It is 
like a page out of some romance. Here I come along out of the sea 
and find a sick man all alone with two hundred slaves--" 
Recruits,he corrected. "Contract labourers. They serve only 
three yearsand they are free agents when they enter upon their 
contracts." 
Yes, yes,she hurried on. "--A sick man alone with two hundred 
recruits on a cannibal island--they are cannibalsaren't they? Or 
is it all talk?" 
Talk!he saidwith a smile. "It's a trifle more than that. 
Most of my boys are from the bushand every bushman is a 
cannibal." 
But not after they become recruits? Surely, the boys you have 
here wouldn't be guilty.
They'd eat you if the chance afforded.
Are you just saying so, on theory, or do you really know?she 
asked. 
I know.
Why? What makes you think so? Your own men here?
Yes, my own men here, the very house-boys, the cook that at the 
present moment is making such delicious rolls, thanks to you. Not 
more than three months ago eleven of them sneaked a whale-boat and 
ran for Malaita. Nine of them belonged to Malaita. Two were 
bushmen from San Cristoval. They were fools--the two from San 
Cristoval, I mean; so would any two Malaita men be who trusted 
themselves in a boat with nine from San Cristoval.
Yes?she asked eagerly. "Then what happened?" 
The nine Malaita men ate the two from San Cristoval, all except 
the heads, which are too valuable for mere eating. They stowed 
them away in the stern-locker till they landed. And those two 
heads are now in some bush village back of Langa Langa.
She clapped her hands and her eyes sparkled. "They are really and 
truly cannibals! And just thinkthis is the twentieth century! 
And I thought romance and adventure were fossilized!" 
He looked at her with mild amusement. 
What is the matter now?she queried. 
Oh, nothing, only I don't fancy being eaten by a lot of filthy 
niggers is the least bit romantic.
No, of course not,she admitted. "But to be among them
controlling themdirecting themtwo hundred of themand to 
escape being eaten by them--thatat leastif it isn't romantic
is certainly the quintessence of adventure. And adventure and 
romance are alliedyou know." 
By the same token, to go into a nigger's stomach should be the 
quintessence of adventure,he retorted. 
I don't think you have any romance in you,she exclaimed. 
You're just dull and sombre and sordid like the business men at 
home. I don't know why you're here at all. You should be at home 
placidly vegetating as a banker's clerk or--or--
A shopkeeper's assistant, thank you.
Yes, that--anything. What under the sun are you doing here on the 
edge of things?
Earning my bread and butter, trying to get on in the world.
'By the bitter road the younger son must tread, Ere he win to 
hearth and saddle of his own,'she quoted. "Whyif that isn't 
romanticthen nothing is romantic. Think of all the younger sons 
out over the worldon a myriad of adventures winning to those same 
hearths and saddles. And here you are in the thick of itdoing 
itand here am I in the thick of itdoing it." 
I--I beg pardon,he drawled. 
Well, I'm a younger daughter, then,she amended; "and I have no 
hearth nor saddle--I haven't anybody or anything--and I'm just as 
far on the edge of things as you are." 
In your case, then, I'll admit there is a bit of romance,he 
confessed. 
He could not help but think of the preceding nightsand of her 
sleeping in the hammock on the verandaunder mosquito curtains
her bodyguard of Tahitian sailors stretched out at the far corner 
of the veranda within call. He had been too helpless to resist
but now he resolved she should have his couch inside while he would 
take the hammock. 
You see, I had read and dreamed about romance all my life,she 
was sayingbut I never, in my wildest fancies, thought that I 
should live it. It was all so unexpected. Two years ago I thought 
there was nothing left to me but. . . .She falteredand made a 
moue of distaste. "Wellthe only thing that remainedit seemed 
to mewas marriage." 
And you preferred a cannibal isle and a cartridge-belt?he 
suggested. 
I didn't think of the cannibal isle, but the cartridge-belt was 
blissful.
You wouldn't dare use the revolver if you were compelled to. Or,
noting the glint in her eyesif you did use it, to--well, to hit 
anything.
She started up suddenly to enter the house. He knew she was going 
for her revolver. 
Never mind,he saidhere's mine. What can you do with it?
Shoot the block off your flag-halyards.
He smiled his unbelief. 
I don't know the gun,she said dubiously. 
It's a light trigger and you don't have to hold down. Draw fine.
Yes, yes,she spoke impatiently. "I know automatics--they jam 
when they get hot--only I don't know yours." She looked at it a 
moment. "It's cocked. Is there a cartridge in the chamber?" 
She firedand the block remained intact. 
It's a long shot,he saidwith the intention of easing her 
chagrin. 
But she bit her lip and fired again. The bullet emitted a sharp 
shriek as it ricochetted into space. The metal block rattled back 
and forth. Again and again she firedtill the clip was emptied of 
its eight cartridges. Six of them were hits. The block still 
swayed at the gaff-endbut it was battered out of all usefulness. 
Sheldon was astonished. It was better than he or even Hughie 
Drummond could have done. The women he had knownwhen they 
sporadically fired a rifle or revolverusually shriekedshut 
their eyesand blazed away into space. 
That's really good shooting . . . for a woman,he said. "You 
only missed it twiceand it was a strange weapon." 
But I can't make out the two misses,she complained. "The gun 
worked beautifullytoo. Give me another clip and I'll hit it 
eight times for anything you wish." 
I don't doubt it. Now I'll have to get a new block. Viaburi! 
Here you fella, catch one fella block along store-room.
I'll wager you can't do it eight out of eight . . . anything you 
wish,she challenged. 
No fear of my taking it on,was his answer. "Who taught you to 
shoot?" 
Oh, my father, at first, and then Von, and his cowboys. He was a 
shot--Dad, I mean, though Von was splendid, too.
Sheldon wondered secretly who Von wasand he speculated as to 
whether it was Von who two years previously had led her to believe 
that nothing remained for her but matrimony. 
What part of the United States is your home?he asked. "Chicago 
or Wyoming? or somewhere out there? You know you haven't told me a 
thing about yourself. All that I know is that you are Miss Joan 
Lackland from anywhere." 
You'd have to go farther west to find my stamping grounds.
Ah, let me see--Nevada?
She shook her head. 
California?
Still farther west.
It can't be, or else I've forgotten my geography.
It's your politics,she laughed. "Don't you remember 
'Annexation'?" 
The Philippines!he cried triumphantly. 
No, Hawaii. I was born there. It is a beautiful land. My, I'm 
almost homesick for it already. Not that I haven't been away. I 
was in New York when the crash came. But I do think it is the 
sweetest spot on earth--Hawaii, I mean.
Then what under the sun are you doing down here in this Godforsaken 
place?he asked. "Only fools come here he added 
bitterly. 
Nielsen wasn't a foolwas he?" she queried. "As I understandhe 
made three millions here." 
Only too true, and that fact is responsible for my being here.
And for me, too,she said. "Dad heard about him in the 
Marquesasand so we started. Only poor Dad didn't get here." 
He--your father--died?he faltered. 
She noddedand her eyes grew soft and moist. 
I might as well begin at the beginning.She lifted her head with 
a proud air of dismissing sadnessafterthe manner of a woman 
qualified to wear a Baden-Powell and a long-barrelled Colt's. "I 
was born at Hilo. That's on the island of Hawaii--the biggest and 
best in the whole group. I was brought up the way most girls in 
Hawaii are brought up. They live in the openand they know how to 
ride and swim before they know what six-times-six is. As for meI 
can't remember when I first got on a horse nor when I learned to 
swim. That came before my A B C's. Dad owned cattle ranches on 
Hawaii and Maui--big onesfor the islands. Hokuna had two hundred 
thousand acres alone. It extended in between Mauna Koa and Mauna 
Loaand it was there I learned to shoot goats and wild cattle. On 
Molokai they have big spotted deer. Von was the manager of Hokuna. 
He had two daughters about my own ageand I always spent the hot 
season thereandoncea whole year. The three of us were like 
Indians. Not that we ran wildexactlybut that we were wild to 
run wild. There were always the governessesyou knowand 
lessonsand sewingand housekeeping; but I'm afraid we were too 
often bribed to our tasks with promises of horses or of cattle 
drives. 
Von had been in the army, and Dad was an old sea-dog, and they 
were both stern disciplinarians; only the two girls had no mother, 
and neither had I, and they were two men after all. They spoiled 
us terribly. You see, they didn't have any wives, and they made 
chums out of us--when our tasks were done. We had to learn to do 
everything about the house twice as well as the native servants did 
it--that was so that we should know how to manage some day. And we 
always made the cocktails, which was too holy a rite for any 
servant. Then, too, we were never allowed anything we could not 
take care of ourselves. Of course the cowboys always roped and 
saddled our horses, but we had to be able ourselves to go out in 
the paddock and rope our horses--
What do you mean by ROPE?Sheldon asked. 
To lariat them, to lasso them. And Dad and Von timed us in the 
saddling and made a most rigid examination of the result. It was 
the same way with our revolvers and rifles. The house-boys always 
cleaned them and greased them; but we had to learn how in order to 
see that they did it properly. More than once, at first, one or 
the other of us had our rifles taken away for a week just because 
of a tiny speck of rust. We had to know how to build fires in the 
driving rain, too, out of wet wood, when we camped out, which was 
the hardest thing of all--except grammar, I do believe. We learned 
more from Dad and Von than from the governesses; Dad taught us 
French and Von German. We learned both languages passably well, 
and we learned them wholly in the saddle or in camp. 
In the cool season the girls used to come down and visit me in 
Hilowhere Dad had two housesone at the beachor the three of 
us used to go down to our place in Punaand that meant canoes and 
boats and fishing and swimming. ThentooDad belonged to the 
Royal Hawaiian Yacht Cluband took us racing and cruising. Dad 
could never get away from the seayou know. When I was fourteen I 
was Dad's actual housekeeperwith entire power over the servants
and I am very proud of that period of my life. And when I was 
sixteen we three girls were all sent up to California to Mills 
Seminarywhich was quite fashionable and stifling. How we used to 
long for home! We didn't chum with the other girlswho called us 
little cannibalsjust because we came from the Sandwich Islands
and who made invidious remarks about our ancestors banqueting on 
Captain Cook--which was historically untrueandbesidesour 
ancestors hadn't lived in Hawaii. 
I was three years at Mills Seminary, with trips home, of course, 
and two years in New York; and then Dad went smash in a sugar 
plantation on Maui. The report of the engineers had not been 
right. Then Dad had built a railroad that was called 'Lackland's 
Folly,'--it will pay ultimately, though. But it contributed to the 
smash. The Pelaulau Ditch was the finishing blow. And nothing 
would have happened anyway, if it hadn't been for that big money 
panic in Wall Street. Dear good Dad! He never let me know. But I 
read about the crash in a newspaper, and hurried home. It was 
before that, though, that people had been dinging into my ears that 
marriage was all any woman could get out of life, and good-bye to 
romance. Instead of which, with Dad's failure, I fell right into 
romance.
How long ago was that?Sheldon asked. 
Last year--the year of the panic.
Let me see,Sheldon pondered with an air of gravity. "Sixteen 
plus fiveplus oneequals twenty-two. You were born in 1887?" 
Yes; but it is not nice of you.
I am really sorry,he saidbut the problem was so obvious.
Can't you ever say nice things? Or is it the way you English 
have?There was a snap in her gray eyesand her lips quivered 
suspiciously for a moment. "I should recommendMr. Sheldonthat 
you read Gertrude Atherton's 'American Wives and English 
Husbands.'" 
Thank you, I have. It's over there.He pointed at the 
generously filled bookshelves. "But I am afraid it is rather 
partisan." 
Anything un-English is bound to be,she retorted. "I never have 
liked the English anyway. The last one I knew was an overseer. 
Dad was compelled to discharge him." 
One swallow doesn't make a summer.
But that Englishman made lots of trouble--there! And now please 
don't make me any more absurd than I already am.
I'm trying not to.
Oh, for that matter--She tossed her headopened her mouth to 
complete the retortthen changed her mind. "I shall go on with my 
history. Dad had practically nothing leftand he decided to 
return to the sea. He'd always loved itand I half believe that 
he was glad things had happened as they did. He was like a boy 
againbusy with plans and preparations from morning till night. 
He used to sit up half the night talking things over with me. That 
was after I had shown him that I was really resolved to go along. 
He had made his start, you know, in the South Seas--pearls and 
pearl shell--and he was sure that more fortunes, in trove of one 
sort and another, were to be picked up. Cocoanut-planting was his 
particular idea, with trading, and maybe pearling, along with other 
things, until the plantation should come into bearing. He traded 
off his yacht for a schooner, the Miele, and away we went. I took 
care of him and studied navigation. He was his own skipper. We 
had a Danish mate, Mr. Ericson, and a mixed crew of Japanese and 
Hawaiians. We went up and down the Line Islands, first, until Dad 
was heartsick. Everything was changed. They had been annexed and 
divided by one power or another, while big companies had stepped in 
and gobbled land, trading rights, fishing rights, everything. 
Next we sailed for the Marquesas. They were beautifulbut the 
natives were nearly extinct. Dad was cut up when he learned that 
the French charged an export duty on copra--he called it medieval-but 
he liked the land. There was a valley of fifteen thousand 
acres on Nuka-hivahalf inclosing a perfect anchoragewhich he 
fell in love with and bought for twelve hundred Chili dollars. But 
the French taxation was outrageous (that was why the land was so 
cheap)andworst of allwe could obtain no labour. What kanakas 
there were wouldn't workand the officials seemed to sit up nights 
thinking out new obstacles to put in our way. 
Six months was enough for Dad. The situation was hopeless. 
'We'll go to the Solomons,' he said, 'and get a whiff of English 
rule. And if there are no openings there we'll go on to the 
Bismarck Archipelago. I'll wager the Admiraltys are not yet 
civilized.' All preparations were made, things packed on board, 
and a new crew of Marquesans and Tahitians shipped. We were just 
ready to start to Tahiti, where a lot of repairs and refitting for 
the Miele were necessary, when poor Dad came down sick and died.
And you were left all alone?
Joan nodded. 
Very much alone. I had no brothers nor sisters, and all Dad's 
people were drowned in a Kansas cloud-burst. That happened when he 
was a little boy. Of course, I could go back to Von. There's 
always a home there waiting for me. But why should I go? Besides, 
there were Dad's plans, and I felt that it devolved upon me to 
carry them out. It seemed a fine thing to do. Also, I wanted to 
carry them out. And . . . here I am. 
Take my advice and never go to Tahiti. It is a lovely placeand 
so are the natives. But the white people! Now Barabbas lived in 
Tahiti. Thievesrobbersand lairs--that is what they are. The 
honest men wouldn't require the fingers of one hand to count. The 
fact that I was a woman only simplified matters with them. They 
robbed me on every pretextand they lied without pretext or need. 
Poor Mr. Ericson was corrupted. He joined the robbersand O.K.'d 
all their demands even up to a thousand per cent. If they robbed 
me of ten francshis share was three. One bill of fifteen hundred 
francs I paidnetted him five hundred francs. All thisof 
courseI learned afterward. But the Miele was oldthe repairs 
had to be madeand I was chargednot three pricesbut seven 
prices. 
I never shall know how much Ericson got out of it. He lived 
ashore in a nicely furnished house. The shipwrights were giving it 
to him rent-free. Fruit, vegetables, fish, meat, and ice came to 
this house every day, and he paid for none of it. It was part of 
his graft from the various merchants. And all the while, with 
tears in his eyes, he bemoaned the vile treatment I was receiving 
from the gang. No, I did not fall among thieves. I went to 
Tahiti. 
But when the robbers fell to cheating one anotherI got my first 
clues to the state of affairs. One of the robbed robbers came to 
me after darkwith factsfiguresand assertions. I knew I was 
ruined if I went to law. The judges were corrupt like everything 
else. But I did do one thing. In the dead of night I went to 
Ericson's house. I had the same revolver I've got nowand I made 
him stay in bed while I overhauled things. Nineteen hundred and 
odd francs was what I carried away with me. He never complained to 
the policeand he never came back on board. As for the rest of 
the gangthey laughed and snapped their fingers at me. There were 
two Americans in the placeand they warned me to leave the law 
alone unless I wanted to leave the Miele behind as well. 
Then I sent to New Zealand and got a German mate. He had a 
master's certificate, and was on the ship's papers as captain, but 
I was a better navigator than he, and I was really captain myself. 
I lost her, too, but it's no reflection on my seamanship. We were 
drifting four days outside there in dead calms. Then the 
nor'wester caught us and drove us on the lee shore. We made sail 
and tried to clew off, when the rotten work of the Tahiti 
shipwrights became manifest. Our jib-boom and all our head-stays 
carried away. Our only chance was to turn and run through the 
passage between Florida and Ysabel. And when we were safely 
through, in the twilight, where the chart shows fourteen fathoms as 
the shoalest water, we smashed on a coral patch. The poor old 
Miele struck only once, and then went clear; but it was too much 
for her, and we just had time to clear away in the boat when she 
went down. The German mate was drowned. We lay all night to a 
sea-drag, and next morning sighted your place here.
I suppose you will go back to Von, now?Sheldon queried. 
Nothing of the sort. Dad planned to go to the Solomons. I shall 
look about for some land and start a small plantation. Do you know 
any good land around here? Cheap?
By George, you Yankees are remarkable, really remarkable,said 
Sheldon. "I should never have dreamed of such a venture." 
Adventure,Joan corrected him. 
That's right--adventure it is. And if you'd gone ashore on 
Malaita instead of Guadalcanar you'd have been kai-kai'd long ago, 
along with your noble Tahitian sailors.
Joan shuddered. 
To tell the truth,she confessedwe were very much afraid to 
land on Guadalcanar. I read in the 'Sailing Directions' that the 
natives were treacherous and hostile. Some day I should like to go 
to Malaita. Are there any plantations there?
Not one. Not a white trader even.
Then I shall go over on a recruiting vessel some time.
Impossible!Sheldon cried. "It is no place for a woman." 
I shall go just the same,she repeated. 
But no self-respecting woman--
Be careful,she warned him. "I shall go some dayand then you 
may be sorry for the names you have called me." 
CHAPTER VI--TEMPEST 
It was the first time Sheldon had been at close quarters with an 
American girland he would have wondered if all American girls 
were like Joan Lackland had he not had wit enough to realize that 
she was not at all typical. Her quick mind and changing moods 
bewildered himwhile her outlook on life was so different from 
what he conceived a woman's outlook should bethat he was more 
often than not at sixes and sevens with her. He could never 
anticipate what she would say or do next. Of only one thing was he 
sureand that was that whatever she said or did was bound to be 
unexpected and unsuspected. There seemedtoosomething almost 
hysterical in her make-up. Her temper was quick and stormyand 
she relied too much on herself and too little on himwhich did not 
approximate at all to his ideal of woman's conduct when a man was 
around. Her assumption of equality with him was disconcertingand 
at times he half-consciously resented the impudence and bizarreness 
of her intrusion upon him--rising out of the sea in a howling 
nor'westerfresh from poking her revolver under Ericson's nose
protected by her gang of huge Polynesian sailorsand settling down 
in Berande like any shipwrecked sailor. It was all on a par with 
her Baden-Powell and the long 38 Colt's. 
At any rateshe did not look the part. And that was what he could 
not forgive. Had she been short-hairedheavy-jawedlargemuscled
hard-bittenand utterly unlovely in every wayall would 
have been well. Instead of which she was hopelessly and 
deliciously feminine. Her hair worried himit was so generously 
beautiful. And she was so slenderly and prettily the woman--the 
girlrather--that it cut him like a knife to see herwith quick
comprehensive eyes and sharply imperative voicesuperintend the 
launching of the whale-boat through the surf. In imagination he 
could see her roping a horseand it always made him shudder. 
Thentooshe was so many-sided. Her knowledge of literature and 
art surprised himwhile deep down was the feeling that a girl who 
knew such things had no right to know how to rig tacklesheave up 
anchorsand sail schooners around the South Seas. Such things in 
her brain were like so many oaths on her lips. While for such a 
girl to insist that she was going on a recruiting cruise around 
Malaita was positive self-sacrilege. 
He always perturbedly harked back to her feminineness. She could 
play the piano far better than his sisters at homeand with far 
finer appreciation--the piano that poor Hughie had so heroically 
laboured over to keep in condition. And when she strummed the 
guitar and sang liquidvelvety Hawaiian hulashe sat entranced. 
Then she was all womanand the magic of sex kidnapped the 
irritations of the day and made him forget the big revolverthe 
Baden-Powelland all the rest. But what rightthe next thought 
in his brain would whisperhad such a girl to swagger around like 
a man and exult that adventure was not dead? Woman that adventured 
were adventuressesand the connotation was not nice. Besideshe 
was not enamoured of adventure. Not since he was a boy had it 
appealed to him--though it would have driven him hard to explain 
what had brought him from England to the Solomons if it had not 
been adventure. 
Sheldon certainly was not happy. The unconventional state of 
affairs was too much for his conservative disposition and training. 
Berandeinhabited by one lone white manwas no place for Joan 
Lackland. Yet he racked his brain for a way outand even talked 
it over with her. In the first placethe steamer from Australia 
was not due for three weeks. 
One thing is evident: you don't want me here,she said. "I'll 
man the whale-boat to-morrow and go over to Tulagi." 
But as I told you before, that is impossible,he cried. "There 
is no one there. The Resident Commissioner is away in Australia. 
Them is only one white mana third assistant understrapper and exsailor--
a common sailor. He is in charge of the government of the 
Solomonsto say nothing of a hundred or so niggers--prisoners. 
Besideshe is such a fool that he would fine you five pounds for 
not having entered at Tulagiwhich is the port of entryyou know. 
He is not a nice manandI repeatit is impossible." 
There is Guvutu,she suggested. 
He shook his head. 
There's nothing there but fever and five white men who are 
drinking themselves to death. I couldn't permit it.
Oh thank you,she said quietly. "I guess I'll start to-day.--
Viaburi! You go along Noa Noahspeak 'm come along me." 
Noa Noah was her head sailorwho had been boatswain of the Miele. 
Where are you going?Sheldon asked in surprise.--"Vlaburi! You 
stop." 
To Guvutu--immediately,was her reply. 
But I won't permit it.
That is why I am going. You said it once before, and it is 
something I cannot brook.
What?He was bewildered by her sudden anger. "If I have 
offended in any way--" 
Viaburi, you fetch 'm one fella Noa Noah along me,she commanded. 
The black boy started to obey. 
Viaburi! You no stop I break 'm head belong you. And now, Miss 
Lackland, I insist--you must explain. What have I said or done to 
merit this?
You have presumed, you have dared--
She choked and swallowedand could not go on. 
Sheldon looked the picture of despair. 
I confess my head is going around with it all,he said. "If you 
could only be explicit." 
As explicit as you were when you told me that you would not permit 
me to go to Guvutu?
But what's wrong with that?
But you have no right--no man has the right--to tell me what he 
will permit or not permit. I'm too old to have a guardian, nor did 
I sail all the way to the Solomons to find one.
A gentleman is every woman's guardian.
Well, I'm not every woman--that's all. Will you kindly allow me 
to send your boy for Noa Noah? I wish him to launch the whaleboat. 
Or shall I go myself for him?
Both were now on their feetshe with flushed cheeks and angry 
eyeshepuzzledvexedand alarmed. The black boy stood like a 
statue--a plum-black statue--taking no interest in the transactions 
of these incomprehensible whitesbut dreaming with calm eyes of a 
certain bush village high on the jungle slopes of Malaitawith 
blue smoke curling up from the grass houses against the gray 
background of an oncoming mountain-squall. 
But you won't do anything so foolish--he began. 
There you go again,she cried. 
I didn't mean it that way, and you know I didn't.He was 
speaking slowly and gravely. "And that other thingthat not 
permitting--it is only a manner of speaking. Of course I am not 
your guardian. You know you can go to Guvutu if you want to"--"or 
to the devil he was almost tempted to add. OnlyI should 
deeply regret itthat is all. And I am very sorry that I should 
have said anything that hurt you. RememberI am an Englishman." 
Joan smiled and sat down again. 
Perhaps I have been hasty,she admitted. "You seeI am 
intolerant of restraint. If you only knew how I have been 
compelled to fight for my freedom. It is a sore point with me
this being told what I am to do or not do by you self-constituted 
lords of creation.-Viaburi I You stop along kitchen. No bring 'm 
Noa Noah.--And nowMr. Sheldonwhat am I to do? You don't want 
me hereand there doesn't seem to be any place for me to go." 
That is unfair. Your being wrecked here has been a godsend to me. 
I was very lonely and very sick. I really am not certain whether 
or not I should have pulled through had you not happened along. 
But that is not the point. Personally, purely selfishly 
personally, I should be sorry to see you go. But I am not 
considering myself. I am considering you. It--it is hardly the 
proper thing, you know. If I were married--if there were some 
woman of your own race here--but as it is--
She threw up her hands in mock despair. 
I cannot follow you,she said. "In one breath you tell me I must 
goand in the next breath you tell me there is no place to go and 
that you will not permit me to go. What is a poor girl to do?" 
That's the trouble,he said helplessly. 
And the situation annoys you.
Only for your sake.
Then let me save your feelings by telling you that it does not 
annoy me at all--except for the row you are making about it. I 
never allow what can't be changed to annoy me. There is no use in 
fighting the inevitable. Here is the situation. You are here. 
am here. I can't go elsewhere, by your own account. You certainly 
can't go elsewhere and leave me here alone with a whole plantation 
and two hundred woolly cannibals on my hands. Therefore you stay, 
and I stay. It is very simple. Also, it is adventure. And 
furthermore, you needn't worry for yourself. I am not 
matrimonially inclined. I came to the Solomons for a plantation, 
not a husband.
Sheldon flushedbut remained silent. 
I know what you are thinking,she laughed gaily. "That if I were 
a man you'd wring my neck for me. And I deserve ittoo. I'm so 
sorry. I ought not to keep on hurting your feelings." 
I'm afraid I rather invite it,he saidrelieved by the signs of 
the tempest subsiding. 
I have it,she announced. "Lend me a gang of your boys for today. 
I'll build a grass house for myself over in the far corner of 
the compound--on pilesof course. I can move in to-night. I'll 
be comfortable and safe. The Tahitians can keep an anchor watch 
just as aboard ship. And then I'll study cocoanut planting. In 
returnI'll run the kitchen end of your household and give you 
some decent food to eat. And finallyI won't listen to any of 
your protests. I know all that you are going to say and offer-your 
giving the bungalow up to me and building a grass house for 
yourself. And I won't have it. You may as well consider 
everything settled. On the other handif you don't agreeI will 
go across the riverbeyond your jurisdictionand build a village 
for myself and my sailorswhom I shall send in the whale-boat to 
Guvutu for provisions. And now I want you to teach me billiards." 
CHAPTER VII--A HARD-BITTEN GANG 
Joan took hold of the household with no uncertain grip
revolutionizing things till Sheldon hardly recognized the place. 
For the first time the bungalow was clean and orderly. No longer 
the house-boys loafed and did as little as they could; while the 
cook complained that "head belong him walk about too much from 
the strenuous course in cookery which she put him through. Nor did 
Sheldon escape being roundly lectured for his laziness in eating 
nothing but tinned provisions. She called him a muddler and a 
slouch, and other invidious names, for his slackness and his 
disregard of healthful food. 
She sent her whale-boat down the coast twenty miles for limes and 
oranges, and wanted to know scathingly why said fruits had not long 
since been planted at Berande, while he was beneath contempt 
because there was no kitchen garden. Mummy apples, which he had 
regarded as weeds, under her guidance appeared as appetizing 
breakfast fruit, and, at dinner, were metamorphosed into puddings 
that elicited his unqualified admiration. Bananas, foraged from 
the bush, were served, cooked and raw, a dozen different ways, each 
one of which he declared was better than any other. She or her 
sailors dynamited fish daily, while the Balesuna natives were paid 
tobacco for bringing in oysters from the mangrove swamps. Her 
achievements with cocoanuts were a revelation. She taught the cook 
how to make yeast from the milk, that, in turn, raised light and 
airy bread. From the tip-top heart of the tree she concocted a 
delicious salad. From the milk and the meat of the nut she made 
various sauces and dressings, sweet and sour, that were served, 
according to preparation, with dishes that ranged from fish to 
pudding. She taught Sheldon the superiority of cocoanut cream over 
condensed cream, for use in coffee. From the old and sprouting 
nuts she took the solid, spongy centres and turned them into 
salads. Her forte seemed to be salads, and she astonished him with 
the deliciousness of a salad made from young bamboo shoots. Wild 
tomatoes, which had gone to seed or been remorselessly hoed out 
from the beginning of Berande, were foraged for salads, soups, and 
sauces. The chickens, which had always gone into the bush and 
hidden their eggs, were given laying-bins, and Joan went out 
herself to shoot wild duck and wild pigeons for the table. 
Not that I like to do this sort of work she explained, in 
reference to the cookery; but because I can't get away from Dad's 
training." 
Among other thingsshe burned the pestilential hospital
quarrelled with Sheldon over the deadandin angerset her own 
men to work building a newand what she called a decenthospital. 
She robbed the windows of their lawn and muslin curtainsreplacing 
them with gaudy calico from the trade-storeand made herself 
several gowns. When she wrote out a list of goods and clothing for 
herselfto be sent down to Sydney by the first steamerSheldon 
wondered how long she had made up her mind to stay. 
She was certainly unlike any woman he had ever known or dreamed of. 
So far as he was concerned she was not a woman at all. She neither 
languished nor blandished. No feminine lures were wasted on him. 
He might have been her brotheror she his brotherfor all sex had 
to do with the strange situation. Any mere polite gallantry on his 
part was ignored or snubbedand he had very early given up 
offering his hand to her in getting into a boat or climbing over a 
logand he had to acknowledge to himself that she was eminently 
fitted to take care of herself. Despite his warnings about 
crocodiles and sharksshe persisted in swimming in deep water off 
the beach; nor could he persuade herwhen she was in the boatto 
let one of the sailors throw the dynamite when shooting fish. She 
argued that she was at least a little bit more intelligent than 
theyand thatthereforethere was less liability of an accident 
if she did the shooting. She was to him the most masculine and at 
the same time the most feminine woman he had ever met. 
A source of continual trouble between them was the disagreement 
over methods of handling the black boys. She ruled by stern 
kindnessrarely rewardingnever punishingand he had to confess 
that her own sailors worshipped herwhile the house-boys were her 
slavesand did three times as much work for her as he had ever got 
out of them. She quickly saw the unrest of the contract labourers
and was not blind to the dangeralways imminentthat both she and 
Sheldon ran. Neither of them ever ventured out without a revolver
and the sailors who stood the night watches by Joan's grass house 
were armed with rifles. But Joan insisted that this reign of 
terror had been caused by the reign of fear practised by the white 
men. She had been brought up with the gentle Hawaiianswho never 
were ill-treated nor roughly handledand she generalized that the 
Solomon Islandersunder kind treatmentwould grow gentle. 
One evening a terrific uproar arose in the barracksand Sheldon
aided by Joan's sailorssucceeded in rescuing two women whom the 
blacks were beating to death. To save them from the vengeance of 
the blacksthey were guarded in the cook-house for the night. 
They were the two women who did the cooking for the labourersand 
their offence had consisted of one of them taking a bath in the big 
cauldron in which the potatoes were boiled. The blacks were not 
outraged from the standpoint of cleanliness; they often took baths 
in the cauldrons themselves. The trouble lay in that the bather 
had been a lowdegradedwretched female; for to the Solomon 
Islander all females are lowdegradedand wretched. 
Next morningJoan and Sheldonat breakfastwere aroused by a 
swelling murmur of angry voices. The first rule of Berande had 
been broken. The compound had been entered without permission or 
commandand all the two hundred labourerswith the exception of 
the boss-boyswere guilty of the offence. They crowded up
threatening and shoutingclose under the front veranda. Sheldon 
leaned over the veranda railinglooking down upon themwhile Joan 
stood slightly back. When the uproar was stilledtwo brothers 
stood forth. They were large mensplendidly muscledand with 
faces unusually ferociouseven for Solomon Islanders. One was 
Carin-Jamaotherwise The Silent; and the other was Bellin-Jama
The Boaster. Both had served on the Queensland plantations in the 
old daysand they were known as evil characters wherever white men 
met and gammed. 
We fella boy we want 'm them dam two black fella Mary,said 
Bellin-Jama. 
What you do along black fella Mary?Sheldon asked. 
Kill 'm,said Bellin-Jama. 
What name you fella boy talk along me?Sheldon demandedwith a 
show of rising anger. "Big bell he ring. You no belong along 
here. You belong along field. Bime bybig fella bell he ring
you stop along kai-kaiyou come talk along me about two fella 
Mary. Now all you boy get along out of here." 
The gang waited to see what Bellin-Jama would doand Bellin-Jama 
stood still. 
Me no go,he said. 
You watch out, Bellin-Jama,Sheldon said sharplyor I send you 
along Tulagi one big fella lashing. My word, you catch 'm strong 
fella.
Bellin-Jama glared up belligerently. 
You want 'm fight,he saidputting up his fists in approved
returned-Queenslander style. 
Nowin the Solomonswhere whites are few and blacks are manyand 
where the whites do the rulingsuch an offer to fight is the 
deadliest insult. Blacks are not supposed to dare so highly as to 
offer to fight a white man. At the bestall they can look for is 
to be beaten by the white man. 
A murmur of admiration at Bellin-Jama's bravery went up from the 
listening blacks. But Bellin-Jama's voice was still ringing in the 
airand the murmuring was just beginningwhen Sheldon cleared the 
railleaping straight downward. From the top of the railing to 
the ground it was fifteen feetand Bellin-Jama was directly 
beneath. Sheldon's flying body struck him and crushed him to 
earth. No blows were needed to be struck. The black had been 
knocked helpless. Joanstartled by the unexpected leapsaw 
Carin-JamaThe Silentreach out and seize Sheldon by the throat 
as he was half-way to his feetwhile the five-score blacks surged 
forward for the killing. Her revolver was outand Carin-Jama let 
go his gripreeling backward with a bullet in his shoulder. In 
that fleeting instant of action she had thought to shoot him in the 
armwhichat that short distancemight reasonably have been 
achieved. But the wave of savages leaping forward had changed her 
shot to the shoulder. It was a moment when not the slightest 
chance could be taken. 
The instant his throat was releasedSheldon struck out with his 
fistand Carin-Jama joined his brother on the ground. The mutiny 
was quelledand five minutes more saw the brothers being carried 
to the hospitaland the mutineersmarshalled by the gang-bosses
on the way to the fields. 
When Sheldon came up on the verandahe found Joan collapsed on the 
steamer-chair and in tears. The sight unnerved him as the row just 
over could not possibly have done. A woman in tears was to him an 
embarrassing situation; and when that woman was Joan Lacklandfrom 
whom he had grown to expect anything unexpectedhe was really 
frightened. He glanced down at her helplesslyand moistened his 
lips. 
I want to thank you,he began. "There isn't a doubt but what you 
saved my lifeand I must say--" 
She abruptly removed her handsshowing a wrathful and tear-stained 
face. 
You brute! You coward!she cried. "You have made me shoot a 
manand I never shot a man in my life before." 
It's only a flesh-wound, and he isn't going to die,Sheldon 
managed to interpolate. 
What of that? I shot him just the same. There was no need for 
you to jump down there that way. It was brutal and cowardly.
Oh, now I say--he began soothingly. 
Go away. Don't you see I hate you! hate you! Oh, won't you go 
away!
Sheldon was white with anger. 
Then why in the name of common sense did you shoot?he demanded. 
Be-be-because you were a white man,she sobbed. "And Dad would 
never have left any white man in the lurch. But it was your fault. 
You had no right to get yourself in such a position. Besidesit 
wasn't necessary." 
I am afraid I don't understand,he said shortlyturning away. 
We will talk it over later on.
Look how I get on with the boys,she saidwhile he paused in the 
doorwaystiffly politeto listen. "There's those two sick boys I 
am nursing. They will do anything for me when they get welland I 
won't have to keep them in fear of their life all the time. It is 
not necessaryI tell youall this harshness and brutality. What 
if they are cannibals? They are human beingsjust like you and 
meand they are amenable to reason. That is what distinguishes 
all of us from the lower animals." 
He nodded and went out. 
I suppose I've been unforgivably foolish,was her greetingwhen 
he returned several hours later from a round of the plantation. 
I've been to the hospital, and the man is getting along all right. 
It is not a serious hurt.
Sheldon felt unaccountably pleased and happy at the changed aspect 
of her mood. 
You see, you don't understand the situation,he began. "In the 
first placethe blacks have to be ruled sternly. Kindness is all 
very wellbut you can't rule them by kindness only. I accept all 
that you say about the Hawaiians and the Tahitians. You say that 
they can be handled that wayand I believe you. I have had no 
experience with them. But you have had no experience with the 
blacksand I ask you to believe me. They are different from your 
natives. You are used to Polynesians. These boys are Melanesians. 
They're blacks. They're niggers--look at their kinky hair. And 
they're a whole lot lower than the African niggers. Reallyyou 
knowthere is a vast difference." 
They possess no gratitude, no sympathy, no kindliness. If you are 
kind to them, they think you are a fool. If you are gentle with 
them they think you are afraid. And when they think you are 
afraid, watch out, for they will get you. Just to show you, let me 
state the one invariable process in a black man's brain when, on 
his native heath, he encounters a stranger. His first thought is 
one of fear. Will the stranger kill him? His next thought, seeing 
that he is not killed, is: Can he kill the stranger? There was 
Packard, a Colonial trader, some twelve miles down the coast. He 
boasted that he ruled by kindness and never struck a blow. The 
result was that he did not rule at all. He used to come down in 
his whale-boat to visit Hughie and me. When his boat's crew 
decided to go home, he had to cut his visit short to accompany 
them. I remember one Sunday afternoon when Packard had accepted 
our invitation to stop to dinner. The soup was just served, when 
Hughie saw a nigger peering in through the door. He went out to 
him, for it was a violation of Berande custom. Any nigger has to 
send in word by the house-boys, and to keep outside the compound. 
This man, who was one of Packard's boat's-crew, was on the veranda. 
And he knew better, too. 'What name?' said Hughie. 'You tell 'm 
white man close up we fella boat's-crew go along. He no come now, 
we fella boy no wait. We go.' And just then Hughie fetched him a 
clout that knocked him clean down the stairs and off the veranda.
But it was needlessly cruel,Joan objected. "You wouldn't treat 
a white man that way." 
And that's just the point. He wasn't a white man. He was a low 
black nigger, and he was deliberately insulting, not alone his own 
white master, but every white master in the Solomons. He insulted 
me. He insulted Hughie. He insulted Berande.
Of course, according to your lights, to your formula of the rule 
of the strong--
Yes,Sheldon interruptedbut it was according to the formula of 
the rule of the weak that Packard ruled. And what was the result? 
I am still alive. Packard is dead. He was unswervingly kind and 
gentle to his boys, and his boys waited till one day he was down 
with fever. His head is over on Malaita now. They carried away 
two whale-boats as well, filled with the loot of the store. Then 
there was Captain Mackenzie of the ketch Minota. He believed in 
kindness. He also contended that better confidence was established 
by carrying no weapons. On his second trip to Malaita, recruiting, 
he ran into Bina, which is near Langa Langa. The rifles with which 
the boat's-crew should have been armed, were locked up in his 
cabin. When the whale-boat went ashore after recruits, he paraded 
around the deck without even a revolver on him. He was tomahawked. 
His head remains in Malaita. It was suicide. So was Packard's 
finish suicide.
I grant that precaution is necessary in dealing with them,Joan 
agreed; "but I believe that more satisfactory results can be 
obtained by treating them with discreet kindness and gentleness." 
And there I agree with YOU, but you must understand one thing. 
Berande, bar none, is by far the worst plantation in the Solomons 
so far as the labour is concerned. And how it came to be so proves 
your point. The previous owners of Berande were not discreetly 
kind. They were a pair of unadulterated brutes. One was a downeast 
Yankee, as I believe they are called, and the other was a 
guzzling German. They were slave-drivers. To begin with, they 
bought their labour from Johnny Be-blowed, the most notorious 
recruiter in the Solomons. He is working out a ten years' sentence 
in Fiji now, for the wanton killing of a black boy. During his 
last days here he had made himself so obnoxious that the natives on 
Malaita would have nothing to do with him. The only way he could 
get recruits was by hurrying to the spot whenever a murder or 
series of murders occurred. The murderers were usually only too 
willing to sign on and get away to escape vengeance. Down here 
they call such escapes, 'pier-head jumps.' There is suddenly a 
roar from the beach, and a nigger runs down to the water pursued by 
clouds of spears and arrows. Of course, Johnny Be-blowed's whaleboat 
is lying ready to pick him up. In his last days Johnny got 
nothing but pier-head jumps. 
And the first owners of Berande bought his recruits--a hard-bitten 
gang of murderers. They were all five-year boys. You seethe 
recruiter has the advantage over a boy when he makes a pier-head 
jump. He could sign him on for ten years did the law permit. 
Wellthat's the gang of murderers we've got on our hands now. Of 
course some are deadsome have been killedand there are others 
serving sentences at Tulagi. Very little clearing did those first 
owners doand less planting. It was war all the time. They had 
one manager killed. One of the partners had his shoulder slashed 
nearly off by a cane-knife. The other was speared on two different 
occasions. Both were bullieswherefore there was a streak of 
cowardice in themand in the end they had to give up. They were 
chased away--literally chased away--by their own niggers. And 
along came poor Hughie and metwo new chumsto take hold of that 
hard-bitten gang. We did not know the situationand we had bought 
Berandeand there was nothing to do but hang on and muddle through 
somehow. 
At first we made the mistake of indiscreet kindness. We tried to 
rule by persuasion and fair treatment. The niggers concluded that 
we were afraid. I blush to think of what fools we were in those 
first days. We were imposed on, and threatened and insulted; and 
we put up with it, hoping our square-dealing would soon mend 
things. Instead of which everything went from bad to worse. Then 
came the day when Hughie reprimanded one of the boys and was nearly 
killed by the gang. The only thing that saved him was the number 
on top of him, which enabled me to reach the spot in time. 
Then began the rule of the strong hand. It was either that or 
quitand we had sunk about all our money into the ventureand we 
could not quit. And besidesour pride was involved. We had 
started out to do somethingand we were so made that we just had 
to go on with it. It has been a hard fightfor we wereand are 
to this dayconsidered the worst plantation in the Solomons from 
the standpoint of labour. Do you knowwe have been unable to get 
white men in. We've offered the managership to half a dozen. I 
won't say they were afraidfor they were not. But they did not 
consider it healthy--at least that is the way it was put by the 
last one who declined our offer. So Hughie and I did the managing 
ourselves." 
And when he died you were prepared to go on all alone!Joan 
criedwith shining eyes. 
I thought I'd muddle through. And now, Miss Lackland, please be 
charitable when I seem harsh, and remember that the situation is 
unparalleled down here. We've got a bad crowd, and we're making 
them work. You've been over the plantation and you ought to know. 
And I assure you that there are no better three-and-four-years-old 
trees on any other plantation in the Solomons. We have worked 
steadily to change matters for the better. We've been slowly 
getting in new labour. That is why we bought the Jessie. We 
wanted to select our own labour. In another year the time will be 
up for most of the original gang. You see, they were recruited 
during the first year of Berande, and their contracts expire on 
different months. Naturally, they have contaminated the new boys 
to a certain extent; but that can soon be remedied, and then 
Berande will be a respectable plantation.
Joan nodded but remained silent. She was too occupied in glimpsing 
the vision of the one lone white man as she had first seen him
helpless from fevera collapsed wraith in a steamer-chairwhoup 
to the last heart-beatby some strange alchemy of racewas 
pledged to mastery. 
It is a pity,she said. "But the white man has to ruleI 
suppose." 
I don't like it,Sheldon assured her. "To save my life I can't 
imagine how I ever came here. But here I amand I can't run 
away." 
Blind destiny of race,she saidfaintly smiling. "We whites 
have been land robbers and sea robbers from remotest time. It is 
in our bloodI guessand we can't get away from it." 
I never thought about it so abstractly,he confessed. "I've been 
too busy puzzling over why I came here." 
CHAPTER VIII--LOCAL COLOUR 
At sunset a small ketch fanned in to anchorageand a little later 
the skipper came ashore. He was a soft-spokengentle-voiced young 
fellow of twentybut he won Joan's admiration in advance when 
Sheldon told her that he ran the ketch all alone with a black crew 
from Malaita. And Romance lured and beckoned before Joan's eyes 
when she learned he was Christian Younga Norfolk Islanderbut a 
direct descendant of John Youngone of the original Bounty 
mutineers. The blended Tahitian and English blood showed in his 
soft eyes and tawny skin; but the English hardness seemed to have 
disappeared. Yet the hardness was thereand it was what enabled 
him to run his ketch single-handed and to wring a livelihood out of 
the fighting Solomons. 
Joan's unexpected presence embarrassed himuntil she herself put 
him at his ease by a frankcomradely manner that offended 
Sheldon's sense of the fitness of things feminine. News from the 
world Young had notbut he was filled with news of the Solomons. 
Fifteen boys had stolen rifles and run away into the bush from 
Lunga plantationwhich was farther east on the Guadalcanar coast. 
And from the bush they had sent word that they were coming back to 
wipe out the three white men in chargewhile two of the three 
white menin turnwere hunting them through the bush. There was 
a strong possibilityYoung volunteeredthat if they were not 
caught they might circle around and tap the coast at Berande in 
order to steal or capture a whale-boat. 
I forgot to tell you that your trader at Ugi has been murdered,
he said to Sheldon. "Five big canoes came down from Port Adams. 
They landed in the night-timeand caught Oscar asleep. What they 
didn't steal they burned. The Flibberty-Gibbet got the news at 
Mboli Passand ran down to Ugi. I was at Mboli when the news 
came." 
I think I'll have to abandon Ugi,Sheldon remarked. 
It's the second trader you've lost there in a year,Young 
concurred. "To make it safe there ought to be two white men at 
least. Those Malaita canoes are always raiding down that wayand 
you know what that Port Adams lot is. I've got a dog for you. 
Tommy Jones sent it up from Neal Island. He said he'd promised it 
to you. It's a first-class nigger-chaser. Hadn't been on board 
two minutes when he had my whole boat's-crew in the rigging. Tommy 
calls him Satan." 
I've wondered several times why you had no dogs here,Joan said. 
The trouble is to keep them. They're always eaten by the 
crocodiles.
Jack Hanley was killed at Marovo Lagoon two months ago,Young 
announced in his mild voice. "The news just came down on the 
Apostle." 
Where is Marovo Lagoon?Joan asked. 
New Georgia, a couple of hundred miles to the westward,Sheldon 
answered. "Bougainville lies just beyond." 
His own house-boys did it,Young went on; "but they were put up 
to it by the Marovo natives. His Santa Cruz boat's-crew escaped in 
the whale-boat to Choiseuland Matherin the Lilysailed over to 
Marovo. He burned a villageand got Hanley's head back. He found 
it in one of the houseswhere the niggers had it drying. And 
that's all the news I've gotexcept that there's a lot of new Lee-
Enfields loose on the eastern end of Ysabel. Nobody knows how the 
natives got them. The government ought to investigate. And--oh 
yesa war vessel's in the groupthe Cambrian. She burned three 
villages at Bina--on account of the Minotayou know--and shelled 
the bush. Then she went to Sio to straighten out things there." 
The conversation became generaland just before Young left to go 
on board Joan asked
How can you manage all alone, Mr. Young?
His largealmost girlish eyes rested on her for a moment before he 
repliedand then it was in the softest and gentlest of voices. 
Oh, I get along pretty well with them. Of course, there is a bit 
of trouble once in a while, but that must be expected. You must 
never let them think you are afraid. I've been afraid plenty of 
times, but they never knew it.
You would think he wouldn't strike a mosquito that was biting 
him,Sheldon said when Young had gone on board. "All the Norfolk 
Islanders that have descended from the Bounty crowd are that way. 
But look at Young. Only three years agowhen he first got the 
Minervahe was lying in Suuon Malaita. There are a lot of 
returned Queenslanders there--a rough crowd. They planned to get 
his head. The son of their chiefold One-Eyed Billyhad 
recruited on Lunga and died of dysentery. That meant that a white 
man's head was owing to Suu--any white manit didn't matter who so 
long as they got the head. And Young was only a ladand they made 
sure to get his easily. They decoyed his whale-boat ashore with a 
promise of recruitsand killed all hands. At the same instant
the Suu gang that was on board the Minerva jumped Young. He was 
just preparing a dynamite stick for fishand he lighted it and 
tossed it in amongst them. One can't get him to talk about itbut 
the fuse was shortthe survivors leaped overboardwhile he 
slipped his anchor and got away. They've got one hundred fathoms 
of shell money on his head nowwhich is worth one hundred pounds 
sterling. Yet he goes into Suu regularly. He was there a short 
time agoreturning thirty boys from Cape Marsh--that's the Fulcrum 
Brothers' plantation." 
At any rate, his news to-night has given me a better insight into 
the life down here,Joan said. "And it is colourful lifeto say 
the least. The Solomons ought to be printed red on the charts--and 
yellowtoofor the diseases." 
The Solomons are not always like this,Sheldon answered. "Of 
courseBerande is the worst plantationand everything it gets is 
the worst. I doubt if ever there was a worse run of sickness than 
we were just getting over when you arrived. Just as luck would 
have itthe Jessie caught the contagion as well. Berande has been 
very unfortunate. All the old-timers shake their heads at it. 
They say it has what you Americans call a hoodoo on it." 
Berande will succeed,Joan said stoutly. "I like to laugh at 
superstition. You'll pull through and come out the big end of the 
horn. The ill luck can't last for ever. I am afraidthoughthe 
Solomons is not a white man's climate." 
It will be, though. Give us fifty years, and when all the bush is 
cleared off back to the mountains, fever will be stamped out; 
everything will be far healthier. There will be cities and towns 
here, for there's an immense amount of good land going to waste.
But it will never become a white man's climate, in spite of all 
that,Joan reiterated. "The white man will always be unable to 
perform the manual labour." 
That is true.
It will mean slavery,she dashed on. 
Yes, like all the tropics. The black, the brown, and the yellow 
will have to do the work, managed by the white men. The black 
labour is too wasteful, however, and in time Chinese or Indian 
coolies will be imported. The planters are already considering the 
matter. I, for one, am heartily sick of black labour.
Then the blacks will die off?
Sheldon shrugged his shouldersand retorted
Yes, like the North American Indian, who was a far nobler type 
than the Melanesian. The world is only so large, you know, and it 
is filling up--
And the unfit must perish?
Precisely so. The unfit must perish.
In the morning Joan was roused by a great row and hullabaloo. Her 
first act was to reach for her revolverbut when she heard Noa 
Noahwho was on guardlaughing outsideshe knew there was no 
dangerand went out to see the fun. Captain Young had landed 
Satan at the moment when the bridge-building gang had started along 
the beach. Satan was big and blackshort-haired and muscularand 
weighed fully seventy pounds. He did not love the blacks. Tommy 
Jones had trained him welltying him up daily for several hours 
and telling off one or two black boys at a time to tease him. So 
Satan had it in for the whole black raceand the second after he 
landed on the beach the bridge-building gang was stampeding over 
the compound fence and swarming up the cocoanut palms. 
Good morning,Sheldon called from the veranda. "And what do you 
think of the nigger-chaser?" 
I'm thinking we have a task before us to train him in to the 
house-boys,she called back. 
And to your Tahitians, too. Look out, Noah! Run for it!
Satanhaving satisfied himself that the tree-perches were 
unassailablewas charging straight for the big Tahitian. 
But Noah stood his groundthough somewhat irresolutelyand Satan
to every one's surprisedanced and frisked about him with laughing 
eyes and wagging tail. 
Now, that is what I might call a proper dog,was Joan's comment. 
He is at least wiser than you, Mr. Sheldon. He didn't require any 
teaching to recognize the difference between a Tahitian and a black 
boy. What do you think, Noah? Why don't he bite you? He savvee 
you Tahitian eh?
Noa Noah shook his head and grinned. 
He no savvee me Tahitian,he explained. "He savvee me wear pants 
all the same white man." 
You'll have to give him a course in 'Sartor Resartus,'Sheldon 
laughedas he came down and began to make friends with Satan. 
It chanced just then that Adamu Adam and Matauaretwo of Joan's 
sailorsentered the compound from the far side-gate. They had 
been down to the Balesuna making an alligator trapandinstead of 
trouserswere clad in lava-lavas that flapped gracefully about 
their stalwart limbs. Satan saw themand advertised his find by 
breaking away from Sheldon's hands and charging. 
No got pants,Noah announced with a grin that broadened as Adamu 
Adam took to flight. 
He climbed up the platform that supported the galvanized iron tanks 
which held the water collected from the roof. Foiled hereSatan 
turned and charged back on Matauare. 
Run, Matauare! Run!Joan called. 
But he held his ground and waited the dog. 
He is the Fearless One--that is what his name means,Joan 
explained to Sheldon. 
The Tahitian watched Satan coollyand when that sanguine-mouthed 
creature lifted into the air in the final leapthe man's hand shot 
out. It was a fair grip on the lower jawand Satan described a 
half circle and was flung to the rearturning over in the air and 
falling heavily on his back. Three times he leapedand three 
times that grip on his jaw flung him to defeat. Then he contented 
himself with trotting at Matauare's heelseyeing him and sniffing 
him suspiciously. 
It's all right, Satan; it's all right,Sheldon assured him. 
That good fella belong along me.
But Satan dogged the Tahitian's movements for a full hour before he 
made up his mind that the man was an appurtenance of the place. 
Then he turned his attention to the three house-boyscornering 
Ornfiri in the kitchen and rushing him against the hot stove
stripping the lava-lava from Lalaperu when that excited youth 
climbed a veranda-postand following Viaburi on top the billiardtable
where the battle raged until Joan managed a rescue. 
CHAPTER IX--AS BETWEEN A MAN AND A WOMAN 
It was Satan's inexhaustible energy and good spirits that most 
impressed them. His teeth seemed perpetually to ache with desire
and in lieu of black legs he husked the cocoanuts that fell from 
the trees in the compoundkept the enclosure clear of intruding 
hensand made a hostile acquaintance with every boss-boy who came 
to report. He was unable to forget the torment of his puppyhood
wherein everlasting hatred of the black had been woven into the 
fibres of consciousness; and such a terror did he make himself that 
Sheldon was forced to shut him up in the living room whenfor any 
reasonstrange natives were permitted in the compound. This 
always hurt Satan's feelings and fanned his wrathso that even the 
house-boys had to watch out for him when he was first released. 
Christian Young sailed away in the Minervacarrying an invitation 
(that would be delivered nobody knew when) to Tommy Jones to drop 
in at Berande the next time he was passing. 
What are your plans when you get to Sydney?Sheldon askedthat 
nightat dinner. 
First I've heard that I'm going to Sydney,Joan retorted. "I 
suppose you've received informationby bush-telegraphthat that 
third assistant understrapper and ex-sailorman at Tulagi is going 
to deport me as an undesirable immigrant." 
Oh, no, nothing of the sort, I assure you,Sheldon began with 
awkward hastefearful of having offendedthough he knew not how. 
I was just wondering, that was all. You see, with the loss of the 
schooner and . . and all the rest . . . you understand . . I was 
thinking that if--a--if--hang it all, until you could communicate 
with your friends, my agents at Sydney could advance you a loan, 
temporary you see, why I'd be only too glad and all the rest, you 
know. The proper--
But his jaw dropped and he regarded her irritably and with 
apprehension. 
What IS the matter?he demandedwith a show of heat. "What HAVE 
I done now?" 
Joan's eyes were bright with battlethe curve of her lips sharp 
with mockery. 
Certainly not the unexpected,she said quietly. "Merely ignored 
me in your ordinaryevery-dayman-godsuperior fashion. 
Naturally it counted for nothingmy telling you that I had no idea 
of going to Sydney. Go to Sydney I mustbecause youin your 
superior wisdomhave so decreed." 
She paused and looked at him curiouslyas though he were some 
strange breed of animal. 
Of course I am grateful for your offer of assistance; but even 
that is no salve to wounded pride. For that matter, it is no more 
than one white man should expect from another. Shipwrecked 
mariners are always helped along their way. Only this particular 
mariner doesn't need any help. Furthermore, this mariner is not 
going to Sydney, thank you.
But what do you intend to do?
Find some spot where I shall escape the indignity of being 
patronized and bossed by the superior sex.
Come now, that is putting it a bit too strongly.Sheldon 
laughedbut the strain in his voice destroyed the effect of 
spontaneity. "You know yourself how impossible the situation is." 
I know nothing of the sort, sir. And if it is impossible, well, 
haven't I achieved it?
But it cannot continue. Really--
Oh, yes, it can. Having achieved it, I can go on achieving it. I 
intend to remain in the Solomons, but not on Berande. To-morrow I 
am going to take the whale-boat over to Pari-Sulay. I was talking 
with Captain Young about it. He says there are at least four 
hundred acres, and every foot of it good for planting. Being an 
island, he says I won't have to bother about wild pigs destroying 
the young trees. All I'll have to do is to keep the weeds hoed 
until the trees come into bearing. First, I'll buy the island; 
next, get forty or fifty recruits and start clearing and planting; 
and at the same time I'll run up a bungalow; and then you'll be 
relieved of my embarrassing presence--now don't say that it isn't.
It is embarrassing,he said bluntly. "But you refuse to see my 
point of viewso there is no use in discussing it. Now please 
forget all about itand consider me at your service concerning 
this . . . this project of yours. I know more about cocoanut
planting than you do. You speak like a capitalist. I don't know 
how much money you havebut I don't fancy you are rolling in 
wealthas you Americans say. But I do know what it costs to clear 
land. Suppose the government sells you Pari-Sulay at a pound an 
acre; clearing will cost you at least four pounds more; that is
five pounds for four hundred acresorsayten thousand dollars. 
Have you that much?" 
She was keenly interestedand he could see that the previous clash 
between them was already forgotten. Her disappointment was plain 
as she confessed: 
No; I haven't quite eight thousand dollars.
Then here's another way of looking at it. You'll need, as you 
said, at least fifty boys. Not counting premiums, their wages are 
thirty dollars a year.
I pay my Tahitians fifteen a month,she interpolated. 
They won't do on straight plantation work. But to return. The 
wages of fifty boys each year will come to three hundred pounds-that 
is, fifteen hundred dollars. Very well. It will be seven 
years before your trees begin to bear. Seven times fifteen hundred 
is ten thousand five hundred dollars--more than you possess, and 
all eaten up by the boys' wages, with nothing to pay for bungalow, 
building, tools, quinine, trips to Sydney, and so forth.
Sheldon shook his head gravely. "You'll have to abandon the idea." 
But I won't go to Sydney,she cried. "I simply won't. I'll buy 
in to the extent of my money as a small partner in some other 
plantation. Let me buy in in Berande!" 
Heaven forbid!he cried in such genuine dismay that she broke 
into hearty laughter. 
There, I won't tease you. Really, you know, I'm not accustomed to 
forcing my presence where it is not desired. Yes, yes; I know 
you're just aching to point out that I've forced myself upon you 
ever since I landed, only you are too polite to say so. Yet as you 
said yourself, it was impossible for me to go away, so I had to 
stay. You wouldn't let me go to Tulagi. You compelled me to force 
myself upon you. But I won't buy in as partner with any one. I'll 
buy Pari-Sulay, but I'll put only ten boys on it and clear slowly. 
Also, I'll invest in some old ketch and take out a trading license. 
For that matter, I'll go recruiting on Malaita.
She looked for protestand found it in Sheldon's clenched hand and 
in every line of his clean-cut face. 
Go ahead and say it,she challenged. "Please don't mind me. 
I'm--I'm getting used to ityou know. Really I am." 
I wish I were a woman so as to tell you how preposterously insane 
and impossible it is,he blurted out. 
She surveyed him with deliberationand said: 
Better than that, you are a man. So there is nothing to prevent 
your telling me, for I demand to be considered as a man. I didn't 
come down here to trail my woman's skirts over the Solomons. 
Please forget that I am accidentally anything else than a man with 
a man's living to make.
Inwardly Sheldon fumed and fretted. Was she making game of him? 
Or did there lurk in her the insidious unhealthfulness of 
unwomanliness? Or was it merely a case of blankstaring
sentimentalidiotic innocence? 
I have told you,he began stifflythat recruiting on Malaita is 
impossible for a woman, and that is all I care to say--or dare.
And I tell you, in turn, that it is nothing of the sort. I've 
sailed the Miele here, master, if you please, all the way from 
Tahiti--even if I did lose her, which was the fault of your 
Admiralty charts. I am a navigator, and that is more than your 
Solomons captains are. Captain Young told me all about it. And I 
am a seaman--a better seaman than you, when it comes right down to 
it, and you know it. I can shoot. I am not a fool. I can take 
care of myself. And I shall most certainly buy a ketch, run her 
myself, and go recruiting on Malaita.
Sheldon made a hopeless gesture. 
That's right,she rattled on. "Wash your hands of me. But as 
Von used to say'You just watch my smoke!'" 
There's no use in discussing it. Let us have some music.
He arose and went over to the big phonograph; but before the disc 
startedand while he was winding the machinehe heard her saying: 
I suppose you've been accustomed to Jane Eyres all your life. 
That's why you don't understand me. Come on, Satan; let's leave 
him to his old music.
He watched her morosely and without intention of speakingtill he 
saw her take a rifle from the standexamine the magazineand 
start for the door. 
Where are you going?he asked peremptorily. 
As between man and woman,she answeredit would be too 
terribly--er--indecent for you to tell me why I shouldn't go 
alligatoring. Good-night. Sleep well.
He shut off the phonograph with a snapstarted toward the door 
after herthen abruptly flung himself into a chair. 
You're hoping a 'gator catches me, aren't you?she called from 
the verandaand as she went down the steps her rippling laughter 
drifted tantalizingly back through the wide doorway. 
CHAPTER X--A MESSAGE FROM BOUCHER 
The next day Sheldon was left all alone. Joan had gone exploring 
Pari-Sulayand was not to be expected back until the late 
afternoon. Sheldon was vaguely oppressed by his lonelinessand 
several heavy squalls during the afternoon brought him frequently 
on to the verandatelescope in handto scan the sea anxiously for 
the whale-boat. Betweenwhiles he scowled over the plantation 
account-booksmade rough estimatesadded and balancedand 
scowled the harder. The loss of the Jessie had hit Berande 
severely. Not alone was his capital depleted by the amount of her 
valuebut her earnings were no longer to be reckoned onand it 
was her earnings that largely paid the running expenses of the 
plantation. 
Poor old Hughie,he muttered aloudonce. "I'm glad you didn't 
live to see itold man. What a cropperwhat a cropper!" 
Between squalls the Flibberty-Gibbet ran in to anchorageand her 
skipperPete Oleson (brother to the Oleson of the Jessie)
ancientgrizzledwild-eyedemaciated by feverdragged his weary 
frame up the veranda steps and collapsed in a steamer-chair. 
Whisky and soda kept him going while he made report and turned in 
his accounts. 
You're rotten with fever,Sheldon said. "Why don't you run down 
to Sydney for a blow of decent climate?" 
The old skipper shook his head. 
I can't. I've ben in the islands too long. I'd die. The fever 
comes out worse down there.
Kill or cure,Sheldon counselled. 
It's straight kill for me. I tried it three years ago. The cool 
weather put me on my back before I landed. They carried me ashore 
and into hospital. I was unconscious one stretch for two weeks. 
After that the doctors sent me back to the islands--said it was the 
only thing that would save me. Well, I'm still alive; but I'm too 
soaked with fever. A month in Australia would finish me.
But what are you going to do?Sheldon queried. "You can't stay 
here until you die." 
That's all that's left to me. I'd like to go back to the old 
country, but I couldn't stand it. I'll last longer here, and here 
I'll stay until I peg out; but I wish to God I'd never seen the 
Solomons, that's all.
He declined to sleep ashoretook his ordersand went back on 
board the cutter. A lurid sunset was blotted out by the heaviest 
squall of the dayand Sheldon watched the whale-boat arrive in the 
thick of it. As the spritsail was taken in and the boat headed on 
to the beachhe was aware of a distinct hurt at sight of Joan at 
the steering-oarstanding erect and swaying her strength to it as 
she resisted the pressures that tended to throw the craft broadside 
in the surf. Her Tahitians leaped out and rushed the boat high up 
the beachand she led her bizarre following through the gate of 
the compound. 
The first drops of rain were driving like hail-stonesthe tall 
cocoanut palms were bending and writhing in the grip of the wind
while the thick cloud-mass of the squall turned the brief tropic 
twilight abruptly to night. 
Quite unconsciously the brooding anxiety of the afternoon slipped 
from Sheldonand he felt strangely cheered at the sight of her 
running up the steps laughingface flushedhair flyingher 
breast heaving from the violence of her late exertions. 
Lovely, perfectly lovely--Pari-Sulay,she panted. "I shall buy 
it. I'll write to the Commissioner to-night. And the site for the 
bungalow--I've selected it already--is wonderful. You must come 
over some day and advise me. You won't mind my staying here until 
I can get settled? Wasn't that squall beautiful? And I suppose 
I'm late for dinner. I'll run and get cleanand be with you in a 
minute." 
And in the brief interval of her absence he found himself walking 
about the big living-room and impatiently and with anticipation 
awaiting her coming. 
Do you know, I'm never going to squabble with you again,he 
announced when they were seated. 
Squabble!was the retort. "It's such a sordid word. It sounds 
cheap and nasty. I think it's much nicer to quarrel." 
Call it what you please, but we won't do it any more, will we?
He cleared his throat nervouslyfor her eyes advertised the 
immediate beginning of hostilities. "I beg your pardon he 
hurried on. I should have spoken for myself. What I mean is that 
I refuse to quarrel. You have the most horrible waywithout 
uttering a wordof making me play the fool. WhyI began with the 
kindest intentionsand here I am now--" 
Making nasty remarks,she completed for him. 
It's the way you have of catching me up,he complained. 
Why, I never said a word. I was merely sitting here, being 
sweetly lured on by promises of peace on earth and all the rest of 
it, when suddenly you began to call me names.
Hardly that, I am sure.
Well, you said I was horrible, or that I had a horrible way about 
me, which is the same thing. I wish my bungalow were up. I'd move 
to-morrow.
But her twitching lips belied her wordsand the next moment the 
man was more uncomfortable than everbeing made so by her 
laughter. 
I was only teasing you. Honest Injun. And if you don't laugh 
I'll suspect you of being in a temper with me. That's right, 
laugh. But don't--she added in alarmdon't if it hurts you. 
You look as though you had a toothache. There, there--don't say 
it. You know you promised not to quarrel, while I have the 
privilege of going on being as hateful as I please. And to begin 
with, there's the Flibberty-Gibbet. I didn't know she was so large 
a cutter; but she's in disgraceful condition. Her rigging is 
something queer, and the next sharp squall will bring her head-gear 
all about the shop. I watched Noa Noah's face as we sailed past. 
He didn't say anything. He just sneered. And I don't blame him.
Her skipper's rotten bad with fever,Sheldon explained. "And he 
had to drop his mate off to take hold of things at Ugi--that's 
where I lost Oscarmy trader. And you know what sort of sailors 
the niggers are." 
She nodded her head judiciallyand while she seemed to debate a 
weighty judgment he asked for a second helping of tinned beef--not 
because he was hungrybut because he wanted to watch her slim
firm fingersnaked of jewels and banded metalswhile his eyes 
pleasured in the swell of the forearmappearing from under the 
sleeve and losing identity in the smoothround wrist undisfigured 
by the netted veins that come to youth when youth is gone. The 
fingers were brown with tan and looked exceedingly boyish. Then
and without effortthe concept came to him. Yesthat was it. He 
had stumbled upon the clue to her tantalizing personality. Her 
fingerssunburned and boyishtold the story. No wonder she had 
exasperated him so frequently. He had tried to treat with her as a 
womanwhen she was not a woman. She was a mere girl--and a boyish 
girl at that--with sunburned fingers that delighted in doing what 
boys' fingers did; with a body and muscles that liked swimming and 
violent endeavour of all sorts; with a mind that was daringbut 
that dared no farther than boys' adventuresand that delighted in 
rifles and revolversStetson hatsand a sexless camaraderie with 
men. 
Somehowas he pondered and watched herit seemed as if he sat in 
church at home listening to the choir-boys chanting. She reminded 
him of those boysor their voicesrather. The same sexless 
quality was there. In the body of her she was woman; in the mind 
of her she had not grown up. She had not been exposed to ripening 
influences of that sort. She had had no mother. Vonher father
native servantsand rough island life had constituted her 
training. Horses and rifles had been her toyscamp and trail her 
nursery. From what she had told himher seminary days had been an 
exiledevoted to study and to ceaseless longing for the wild 
riding and swimming of Hawaii. A boy's trainingand a boy's point 
of view! That explained her chafe at petticoatsher revolt at 
what was only decently conventional. Some day she would grow up
but as yet she was only in the process. 
Wellthere was only one thing for him to do. He must meet her on 
her own basis of boyhoodand not make the mistake of treating her 
as a woman. He wondered if he could love the woman she would be 
when her nature awoke; and he wondered if he could love her just as 
she was and himself wake her up. After allwhatever it wasshe 
had come to fill quite a large place in his lifeas he had 
discovered that afternoon while scanning the sea between the 
squalls. Then he remembered the accounts of Berandeand the 
cropper that was comingand scowled. 
He became aware that she was speaking. 
I beg pardon,he said. "What's that you were saying?" 
You weren't listening to a word--I knew it,she chided. "I was 
saying that the condition of the Flibberty-Gibbet was disgraceful
and that to-morrowwhen you've told the skipper and not hurt his 
feelingsI am going to take my men out and give her an 
overhauling. We'll scrub her bottomtoo. Whythere's whiskers 
on her copper four inches long. I saw it when she rolled. Don't 
forgetI'm going cruising on the Flibberty some dayeven if I 
have to run away with her." 
While at their coffee on the verandaSatan raised a commotion in 
the compound near the beach gateand Sheldon finally rescued a 
mauled and frightened black and dragged him on the porch for 
interrogation. 
What fella marster you belong?he demanded. "What name you come 
along this fella place sun he go down?" 
Me b'long Boucher. Too many boy belong along Port Adams stop 
along my fella marster. Too much walk about.
The black drew a scrap of notepaper from under his belt and passed 
it over. Sheldon scanned it hurriedly. 
It's from Boucher,he explainedthe fellow who took Packard's 
place. Packard was the one I told you about who was killed by his 
boat's-crew. He says the Port Adams crowd is out--fifty of them, 
in big canoes--and camping on his beach. They've killed half a 
dozen of his pigs already, and seem to be looking for trouble. And 
he's afraid they may connect with the fifteen runaways from Lunga.
In which case?she queried. 
In which case Billy Pape will be compelled to send Boucher's 
successor. It's Pape's station, you know. I wish I knew what to 
do. I don't like to leave you here alone.
Take me along then.
He smiled and shook his head. 
Then you'd better take my men along,she advised. "They're good 
shotsand they're not afraid of anything--except Utamiand he's 
afraid of ghosts." 
The big bell was rungand fifty black boys carried the whale-boat 
down to the water. The regular boat's-crew manned herand 
Matauare and three other Tahitiansbelted with cartridges and 
armed with riflessat in the stern-sheets where Sheldon stood at 
the steering-oar. 
My, I wish I could go with you,Joan said wistfullyas the boat 
shoved off. 
Sheldon shook his head. 
I'm as good as a man,she urged. 
You really are needed here,he replied. 
There's that Lunga crowd; they might reach the coast right here, 
and with both of us absent rush the plantation. Good-bye. We'll 
get back in the morning some time. It's only twelve miles.
When Joan started to return to the houseshe was compelled to pass 
among the boat-carrierswho lingered on the beach to chatter in 
queerape-like fashion about the events of the night. They made 
way for herbut there came to heras she was in the midst of 
thema feeling of her own helplessness. There were so many of 
them. What was to prevent them from dragging her down if they so 
willed? Then she remembered that one cry of hers would fetch Noa 
Noah and her remaining sailorseach one of whom was worth a dozen 
blacks in a struggle. As she opened the gateone of the boys 
stepped up to her. In the darkness she could not make him out. 
What name?she asked sharply. "What name belong you?" 
Me Aroa,he said. 
She remembered him as one of the two sick boys she had nursed at 
the hospital. The other one had died. 
Me take 'm plenty fella medicine too much,Aroa was saying. 
Well, and you all right now,she answered. 
Me want 'm tobacco, plenty fella tobacco; me want 'm calico; me 
want 'm porpoise teeth; me want 'm one fella belt.
She looked at him humorouslyexpecting to see a smileor at least 
a grinon his face. Insteadhis face was expressionless. Save 
for a narrow breech-clouta pair of ear-plugsand about his kinky 
hair a chaplet of white cowrie-shellshe was naked. His body was 
fresh-oiled and shinyand his eyes glistened in the starlight like 
some wild animal's. The rest of the boys had crowded up at his 
back in a solid wall. Some one of them giggledbut the remainder 
regarded her in morose and intense silence. 
Well?she said. "What for you want plenty fella things?" 
Me take 'm medicine,quoth Aroa. "You pay me." 
And this was a sample of their gratitudeshe thought. It looked 
as if Sheldon had been right after all. Aroa waited stolidly. A 
leaping fish splashed far out on the water. A tiny wavelet 
murmured sleepily on the beach. The shadow of a flying-fox drifted 
by in velvet silence overhead. A light air fanned coolly on her 
cheek; it was the land-breeze beginning to blow. 
You go along quarters,she saidstarting to turn on her heel to 
enter the gate. 
You pay me,said the boy. 
Aroa, you all the same one big fool. I no pay you. Now you go.
But the black was unmoved. She felt that he was regarding her 
almost insolently as he repeated: 
I take 'm medicine. You pay me. You pay me now.
Then it was that she lost her temper and cuffed his ears so soundly 
as to drive him back among his fellows. But they did not break up. 
Another boy stepped forward. 
You pay me,he said. 
His eyes had the queruloustroubled look such as she had noticed 
in monkeys; but while he was patently uncomfortable under her 
scrutinyhis thick lips were drawn firmly in an effort at sullen 
determination. 
What for?she asked. 
Me Gogoomy,he said. "Bawo brother belong me." 
Bawoshe rememberedwas the sick boy who had died. 
Go on,she commanded. 
Bawo take 'm medicine. Bawo finish. Bawo my brother. You pay 
me. Father belong me one big fella chief along Port Adams. You 
pay me.
Joan laughed. 
Gogoomy, you just the same as Aroa, one big fool. My word, who 
pay me for medicine?
She dismissed the matter by passing through the gate and closing 
it. But Gogoomy pressed up against it and said impudently: 
Father belong me one big fella chief. You no bang 'm head belong 
me. My word, you fright too much.
Me fright?she demandedwhile anger tingled all through her. 
Too much fright bang 'm head belong me,Gogoomy said proudly. 
And then she reached for him across the gate and got him. It was a 
sweepingbroad-handed slapso heavy that he staggered sideways 
and nearly fell. He sprang for the gate as if to force it open
while the crowd surged forward against the fence. Joan thought 
rapidly. Her revolver was hanging on the wall of her grass house. 
Yet one cry would bring her sailorsand she knew she was safe. So 
she did not cry for help. Insteadshe whistled for Satanat the 
same time calling him by name. She knew he was shut up in the 
living roombut the blacks did not wait to see. They fled with 
wild yells through the darknessfollowed reluctantly by Gogoomy; 
while she entered the bungalowlaughing at firstbut finally 
vexed to the verge of tears by what had taken place. She had sat 
up a whole night with the boy who had diedand yet his brother 
demanded to be paid for his life. 
Ugh! the ungrateful beast!she mutteredwhile she debated 
whether or not she would confess the incident to Sheldon. 
CHAPTER XI--THE PORT ADAMS CROWD 
And so it was all settled easily enough,Sheldon was saying. He 
was on the verandadrinking coffee. The whale-boat was being 
carried into its shed. "Boucher was a bit timid at first to carry 
off the situation with a strong handbut he did very well once we 
got started. We made a play at holding a courtand Telepassethe 
old scoundrelaccepted the findings. He's a Port Adams chiefa 
filthy beggar. We fined him ten times the value of the pigsand 
made him move on with his mob. Ohthey're a sweet lotI must 
sayat least sixty of themin five big canoesand out for 
trouble. They've got a dozen Sniders that ought to be 
confiscated." 
Why didn't you?Joan asked. 
And have a row on my hands with the Commissioner? He's terribly 
touchy about his black wards, as he calls them. Well, we started 
them along their way, though they went in on the beach to kai-kai 
several miles back. They ought to pass here some time to-day.
Two hours later the canoes arrived. No one saw them come. The 
house-boys were busy in the kitchen at their own breakfast. The 
plantation hands were similarly occupied in their quarters. Satan 
lay sound asleep on his back under the billiard tablein his sleep 
brushing at the flies that pestered him. Joan was rummaging in the 
store-roomand Sheldon was taking his siesta in a hammock on the 
veranda. He awoke gently. In some occultsubtle way a warning 
that all was not well had penetrated his sleep and aroused him. 
Without movinghe glanced down and saw the ground beneath covered 
with armed savages. They were the same ones he had parted with 
that morningthough he noted an accession in numbers. There were 
men he had not seen before. 
He slipped from the hammock and with deliberate slowness sauntered 
to the railingwhere he yawned sleepily and looked down on them. 
It came to him curiously that it was his destiny ever to stand on 
this high placelooking down on unending hordes of black trouble 
that required controlbullyingand cajolery. But while he 
glanced carelessly over themhe was keenly taking stock. The new 
men were all armed with modern rifles. Ahhe had thought so. 
There were fifteen of themundoubtedly the Lunga runaways. In 
additiona dozen old Sniders were in the hands of the original 
crowd. The rest were armed with spearsclubsbows and arrows
and long-handled tomahawks. Beyonddrawn up on the beachhe 
could see the big war-canoeswith high and fantastically carved 
bows and sternsornamented with scrolls and bands of white cowrie 
shells. These were the men who had killed his traderOscarat 
Ugi. 
What name you walk about this place?he demanded. 
At the same time he stole a glance seaward to where the Flibberty-
Gibbet reflected herself in the glassy calm of the sea. Not a soul 
was visible under her awningsand he saw the whale-boat was 
missing from alongside. The Tahitians had evidently gone shooting 
fish up the Balesuna. He was all alone in his high place above 
this troublewhile his world slumbered peacefully under the 
breathless tropic noon. 
Nobody repliedand he repeated his demandmore of mastery in his 
voice this timeand a hint of growing anger. The blacks moved 
uneasilylike a herd of cattleat the sound of his voice. But 
not one spoke. All eyeshoweverwere staring at him in certitude 
of expectancy. Something was about to happenand they were 
waiting for itwaiting with the unanimousunstable mob-mind for 
the one of them who would make the first action that would 
precipitate all of them into a common action. Sheldon looked for 
this onefor such was the one to fear. Directly beneath him he 
caught sight of the muzzle of a riflebarely projecting between 
two black bodiesthat was slowly elevating toward him. It was 
held at the hip by a man in the second row. 
What name you?Sheldon suddenly shoutedpointing directly at the 
man who held the gunwho startled and lowered the muzzle. 
Sheldon still held the whip handand he intended to keep it. 
Clear out, all you fella boys,he ordered. "Clear out and walk 
along salt water. Savvee!" 
Me talk,spoke up a fat and filthy savage whose hairy chest was 
caked with the unwashed dirt of years. 
Oh, is that you, Telepasse?the white man queried genially. "You 
tell 'm boys clear outand you stop and talk along me." 
Him good fella boy,was the reply. "Him stop along." 
Well, what do you want?Sheldon askedstriving to hide under 
assumed carelessness the weakness of concession. 
That fella boy belong along me.The old chief pointed out 
Gogoomywhom Sheldon recognized. 
White Mary belong you too much no good,Telepasse went on. "Bang 
'm head belong Gogoomy. Gogoomy all the same chief. Bimeby me 
finishGogoomy big fella chief. White Mary bang 'm head. No 
good. You pay me plenty tobaccoplenty powderplenty calico." 
You old scoundrel,was Sheldon's comment. An hour beforehe had 
been chuckling over Joan's recital of the episodeand herean 
hour laterwas Telepasse himself come to collect damages. 
Gogoomy,Sheldon orderedwhat name you walk about here? You 
get along quarters plenty quick.
Me stop,was the defiant answer. 
White Mary b'long you bang 'm head,old Telepasse began again. 
My word, plenty big fella trouble you no pay.
You talk along boys,Sheldon saidwith increasing irritation. 
You tell 'm get to hell along beach. Then I talk with you.
Sheldon felt a slight vibration of the verandaand knew that Joan 
had come out and was standing by his side. But he did not dare 
glance at her. There were too many rifles down below thereand 
rifles had a way of going off from the hip. 
Again the veranda vibrated with her moving weightand he knew that 
Joan had gone into the house. A minute later she was back beside 
him. He had never seen her smokeand it struck him as peculiar 
that she should be smoking now. Then he guessed the reason. With 
a quick glancehe noted the hand at her sideand in it the 
familiarpaper-wrapped dynamite. He notedalsothe end of fuse
split properlyinto which had been inserted the head of a wax 
match. 
Telepasse, you old reprobate, tell 'm boys clear out along beach. 
My word, I no gammon along you.
Me no gammon,said the chief. "Me want 'm pay white Mary bang 'm 
head b'long Gogoomy." 
I'll come down there and bang 'm head b'long you,Sheldon 
repliedleaning toward the railing as if about to leap over. 
An angry murmur aroseand the blacks surged restlessly. The 
muzzles of many guns were rising from the hips. Joan was pressing 
the lighted end of the cigarette to the fuse. A Snider went off 
with the roar of a bomb-gunand Sheldon heard a pane of windowglass 
crash behind him. At the same moment Joan flung the 
dynamitethe fuse hissing and splutteringinto the thick of the 
blacks. They scattered back in too great haste to do any more 
shooting. Satanaroused by the one shotwas snarling and panting 
to be let out. Joan heardand ran to let him out; and thereat the 
tragedy was avertedand the comedy began. 
Rifles and spears were dropped or flung aside in a wild scramble 
for the protection of the cocoanut palms. Satan multiplied 
himself. Never had he been free to tear and rend such a quantity 
of black flesh beforeand he bit and snapped and rushed the flying 
legs till the last pair were above his head. All were treed except 
Telepassewho was too old and fatand he lay prone and without 
movement where he had fallen; while Satanwith too great a heart 
to worry an enemy that did not movedashed frantically from tree 
to treebarking and springing at those who clung on lowest down. 
I fancy you need a lesson or two in inserting fuses,Sheldon 
remarked dryly. 
Joan's eyes were scornful. 
There was no detonator on it,she said. "Besidesthe detonator 
is not yet manufactured that will explode that charge. It's only a 
bottle of chlorodyne." 
She put her fingers into her mouthand Sheldon winced as he saw 
her blowlike a boya sharpimperious whistle--the call she 
always used for her sailorsand that always made him wince. 
They're gone up the Balesuna, shooting fish,he explained. "But 
there comes Oleson with his boat's-crew. He's an old war-horse 
when he gets started. See him banging the boys. They don't pull 
fast enough for him." 
And now what's to be done?she asked. "You've treed your game
but you can't keep it treed." 
No; but I can teach them a lesson.
Sheldon walked over to the big bell. 
It is all right,he replied to her gesture of protest. "My boys 
are practically all bushmenwhile these chaps are salt-water men
and there's no love lost between them. You watch the fun." 
He rang a general calland by the time the two hundred labourers 
trooped into the compound Satan was once more penned in the livingroom
complaining to high heaven at his abominable treatment. The 
plantation hands were dancing war-dances around the base of every 
tree and filling the air with abuse and vituperation of their 
hereditary enemies. The skipper of the Flibberty-Gibbet arrived in 
the thick of itin the first throes of oncoming feverstaggering 
as he walkedand shivering so severely that he could scarcely hold 
the rifle he carried. His face was ghastly bluehis teeth clicked 
and chatteredand the violent sunshine through which he walked 
could not warm him. 
I'll s-s-sit down, and k-k-keep a guard on 'em,he chattered. 
D-d-dash it all, I always g-get f-fever when there's any 
excitement. W-w-wh-what are you going to do?
Gather up the guns first of all.
Under Sheldon's direction the house-boys and gang-bosses collected 
the scattered arms and piled them in a heap on the veranda. The 
modern riflesstolen from LungaSheldon set aside; the Sniders he 
smashed into fragments; the pile of spearsclubsand tomahawks he 
presented to Joan. 
A really unique addition to your collection,he smiled; "picked 
up right on the battlefield." 
Down on the beach he built a bonfire out of the contents of the 
canoeshis blacks smashingbreakingand looting everything they 
laid hands on. The canoes themselvessplintered and broken
filled with sand and coral-boulderswere towed out to ten fathoms 
of water and sunk. 
Ten fathoms will be deep enough for them to work in,Sheldon 
saidas they walked back to the compound. 
Here a Saturnalia had broken loose. The war-songs and dances were 
more unrestrainedandfrom abusethe plantation blacks had 
turned to pelting their helpless foes with pieces of woodhandfuls 
of pebblesand chunks of coral-rock. And the seventy-five lusty 
cannibals clung stoically to their tree-perchesenduring the rain 
of missiles and snarling down promises of vengeance. 
There'll be wars for forty years on Malaita on account of this,
Sheldon laughed. "But I always fancy old Telepasse will never 
again attempt to rush a plantation." 
Eh, you old scoundrel,he addedturning to the old chiefwho 
sat gibbering in impotent rage at the foot of the steps. "Now head 
belong you bang 'm too. Come onMiss Lacklandbang 'm just once. 
It will be the crowning indignity." 
Ugh, he's too dirty. I'd rather give him a bath. Here, you, 
Adamu Adam, give this devil-devil a wash. Soap and water! Fill 
that wash-tub. Ornfiri, run and fetch 'm scrub-brush.
The Tahitiansback from their fishing and grinning at the bedlam 
of the compoundentered into the joke. 
Tambo! Tambo!shrieked the cannibals from the treesappalled at 
so awful a desecrationas they saw their chief tumbled into the 
tub and the sacred dirt rubbed and soused from his body. 
Joanwho had gone into the bungalowtossed down a strip of white 
calicoin which old Telepasse was promptly wrappedand he stood 
forthresplendent and purifiedwithal he still spat and strangled 
from the soap-suds with which Noa Noah had gargled his throat. 
The house-boys were directed to fetch handcuffsandone by one
the Lunga runaways were haled down out of their trees and made 
fast. Sheldon ironed them in pairsand ran a steel chain through 
the links of the irons. Gogoomy was given a lecture for his 
mutinous conduct and locked up for the afternoon. Then Sheldon 
rewarded the plantation hands with an afternoon's holidayand
when they had withdrawn from the compoundpermitted the Port Adams 
men to descend from the trees. And all afternoon he and Joan 
loafed in the cool of the veranda and watched them diving down and 
emptying their sunken canoes of the sand and rocks. It was 
twilight when they embarked and paddled away with a few broken 
paddles. A breeze had sprung upand the Flibberty-Gibbet had 
already sailed for Lunga to return the runaways. 
CHAPTER XII--MR. MORGAN AND MR. RAFF 
Sheldon was back in the plantation superintending the building of a 
bridgewhen the schooner Malakula ran in close and dropped anchor. 
Joan watched the taking in of sail and the swinging out of the boat 
with a sailor's interestand herself met the two men who came 
ashore. While one of the house-boys ran to fetch Sheldonshe had 
the visitors served with whisky and sodaand sat and talked with 
them. 
They seemed awkward and constrained in her presenceand she caught 
first one and then the other looking at her with secret curiosity. 
She felt that they were weighing herappraising herand for the 
first time the anomalous position she occupied on Berande sank 
sharply home to her. On the other handthey puzzled her. They 
were neither traders nor sailors of any type she had known. Nor 
did they talk like gentlemendespite the fact that there was 
nothing offensive in their bearing and that the veneer of ordinary 
social nicety was theirs. Undoubtedlythey were men of affairs-business 
men of a sort; but what affairs should they have in the 
Solomonsand what business on Berande? The elder oneMorganwas 
a huge manbronzed and moustachedwith a deep bass voice and an 
almost guttural speechand the otherRaffwas slight and 
effeminatewith nervous hands and waterywashed-out gray eyes
who spoke with a faint indefinable accent that was hauntingly 
reminiscent of the Cockneyand that was yet not Cockney of any 
brand she had ever encountered. Whatever they werethey were 
self-made menshe concluded; and she felt the impulse to shudder 
at thought of falling into their hands in a business way. There
they would be merciless. 
She watched Sheldon closely when he arrivedand divined that he 
was not particularly delighted to see them. But see them he must
and so pressing was the need thatafter a little perfunctory 
general conversationhe led the two men into the stuffy office. 
Later in the afternoonshe asked Lalaperu where they had gone. 
My word,quoth Lalaperu; "plenty walk aboutplenty look 'm. 
Look 'm tree; look 'm ground belong tree; look 'm all fella bridge; 
look 'm copra-house; look 'm grass-land; look 'm river; look 'm 
whale-boat--my wordplenty big fella look 'm too much." 
What fella man them two fella?she queried. 
Big fella marster along white man,was the extent of his 
description. 
But Joan decided that they were men of importance in the Solomons
and that their examination of the plantation and of its accounts 
was of sinister significance. 
At dinner no word was dropped that gave a hint of their errand. 
The conversation was on general topics; but Joan could not help 
noticing the troubledabsent expression that occasionally came 
into Sheldon's eyes. After coffeeshe left them; and at midnight
from across the compoundshe could hear the low murmur of their 
voices and see glowing the fiery ends of their cigars. Up early 
herselfshe found they had already departed on another tramp over 
the plantation. 
What you think?she asked Viaburi. 
Sheldon marster he go along finish short time little bit,was the 
answer. 
What you think?she asked Ornfiri. 
Sheldon marster big fella walk about along Sydney. Yes, me t'ink 
so. He finish along Berande.
All day the examination of the plantation and the discussion went 
on; and all day the skipper of the Malakula sent urgent messages 
ashore for the two men to hasten. It was not until sunset that 
they went down to the boatand even then a final talk of nearly an 
hour took place on the beach. Sheldon was combating something-that 
she could plainly see; and that his two visitors were not 
giving in she could also plainly see. 
What name?she asked lightlywhen Sheldon sat down to dinner. 
He looked at her and smiledbut it was a very wan and wistful 
smile. 
My word,she went on. "One big fella talk. Sun he go down-talk-
talk; sun he come up--talk-talk; all the time talk-talk. What 
name that fella talk-talk? 
Oh, nothing much.He shrugged his shoulders. "They were trying 
to buy Berandethat was all." 
She looked at him challengingly. 
It must have been more than that. It was you who wanted to sell.
Indeed, no, Miss Lackland; I assure you that I am far from 
desiring to sell.
Don't let us fence about it,she urged. "Let it be straight talk 
between us. You're in trouble. I'm not a fool. Tell me. 
BesidesI may be able to helpto--to suggest something." 
In the pause that followedhe seemed to debatenot so much 
whether he would tell heras how to begin to tell her. 
I'm American, you see,she persistedand our American heritage 
is a large parcel of business sense. I don't like it myself, but I 
know I've got it--at least more than you have. Let us talk it over 
and find a way out. How much do you owe?
A thousand pounds, and a few trifles over--small bills, you know. 
Then, too, thirty of the boys finish their time next week, and 
their balances will average ten pounds each. But what is the need 
of bothering your head with it? Really, you know--
What is Berande worth?--right now?
Whatever Morgan and Raff are willing to pay for it.A glance at 
her hurt expression decided him. "Hughie and I have sunk eight 
thousand pounds in itand our time. It is a good propertyand 
worth more than that. But it has three years to run before its 
returns begin to come in. That is why Hughie and I engaged in 
trading and recruiting. The Jessie and our stations came very near 
to paying the running expenses of Berande." 
And Morgan and Raff offered you what?
A thousand pounds clear, after paying all bills.
The thieves!she cried. 
No, they're good business men, that is all. As they told me, a 
thing is worth no more than one is willing to pay or to receive.
And how much do you need to carry on Berande for three years?
Joan hurried on. 
Two hundred boys at six pounds a year means thirty-six hundred 
pounds--that's the main item.
My, how cheap labour does mount up! Thirty-six hundred pounds, 
eighteen thousand dollars, just for a lot of cannibals! Yet the 
place is good security. You could go down to Sydney and raise the 
money.
He shook his head. 
You can't get them to look at plantations down there. They've 
been taken in too often. But I do hate to give the place up--more 
for Hughie's sake, I swear, than my own. He was bound up in it. 
You see, he was a persistent chap, and hated to acknowledge defeat. 
It--it makes me uncomfortable to think of it myself. We were 
running slowly behind, but with the Jessie we hoped to muddle 
through in some fashion.
You were muddlers, the pair of you, without doubt. But you 
needn't sell to Morgan and Raff. I shall go down to Sydney on the 
next steamer, and I'll come back in a second-hand schooner. I 
should be able to buy one for five or six thousand dollars--
He held up his hand in protestbut she waved it aside. 
I may manage to freight a cargo back as well. At any rate, the 
schooner will take over the Jessie's business. You can make your 
arrangements accordingly, and have plenty of work for her when I 
get back. I'm going to become a partner in Berande to the extent 
of my bag of sovereigns--I've got over fifteen hundred of them, you 
know. We'll draw up an agreement right now--that is, with your 
permission, and I know you won't refuse it.
He looked at her with good-natured amusement. 
You know I sailed here all the way from Tahiti in order to become 
a planter,she insisted. "You know what my plans were. Now I've 
changed themthat's all. I'd rather be a part owner of Berande 
and get my returns in three yearsthan break ground on Pari-Sulay 
and wait seven years." 
And this--er--this schooner. . . . Sheldon changed his mind and 
stopped. 
Yes, go on.
You won't be angry?he queried. 
No, no; this is business. Go on.
You--er--you would run her yourself?--be the captain, in short?-and 
go recruiting on Malaita?
Certainly. We would save the cost of a skipper. Under an 
agreement you would be credited with a manager's salary, and I with 
a captain's. It's quite simple. Besides, if you won't let me be 
your partner, I shall buy Pari-Sulay, get a much smaller vessel, 
and run her myself. So what is the difference?
The difference?--why, all the difference in the world. In the 
case of Pari-Sulay you would be on an independent venture. You 
could turn cannibal for all I could interfere in the matter. But 
on Berande, you would be my partner, and then I would be 
responsible. And of course I couldn't permit you, as my partner, 
to be skipper of a recruiter. I tell you, the thing is what I 
would not permit any sister or wife of mine--
But I'm not going to be your wife, thank goodness--only your 
partner.
Besides, it's all ridiculous,he held on steadily. "Think of the 
situation. A man and a womanboth youngpartners on an isolated 
plantation. Whythe only practical way out would be that I'd have 
to marry you--" 
Mine was a business proposition, not a marriage proposal,she 
interruptedcoldly angry. "I wonder if somewhere in this world 
there is one man who could accept me for a comrade." 
But you are a woman just the same,he beganand there are 
certain conventions, certain decencies--
She sprang up and stamped her foot. 
Do you know what I'd like to say?she demanded. 
Yes,he smiledyou'd like to say, 'Damn petticoats!'
She nodded her head ruefully. 
That's what I wanted to say, but it sounds different on your lips. 
It sounds as though you meant it yourself, and that you meant it 
because of me.
Well, I am going to bed. But do, please, think over my 
proposition, and let me know in the morning. There's no use in my 
discussing it now. You make me so angry. You are cowardly, you 
know, and very egotistic. You are afraid of what other fools will 
say. No matter how honest your motives, if others criticized your 
actions your feelings would be hurt. And you think more about your 
own wretched feelings than you do about mine. And then, being a 
coward--all men are at heart cowards--you disguise your cowardice 
by calling it chivalry. I thank heaven that I was not born a man. 
Good-night. Do think it over. And don't be foolish. What Berande 
needs is good American hustle. You don't know what that is. You 
are a muddler. Besides, you are enervated. I'm fresh to the 
climate. Let me be your partner, and you'll see me rattle the dry 
bones of the Solomons. Confess, I've rattled yours already.
I should say so,he answered. "Reallyyou knowyou have. I 
never received such a dressing-down in my life. If any one had 
ever told me that I'd be a party even to the present situation. . . 
. YesI confessyou have rattled my dry bones pretty 
considerably." 
But that is nothing to the rattling they are going to get,she 
assured himas he rose and took her hand. "Good-night. And do
do give me a rational decision in the morning." 
CHAPTER XIII--THE LOGIC OF YOUTH 
I wish I knew whether you are merely headstrong, or whether you 
really intend to be a Solomon planter,Sheldon said in the 
morningat breakfast. 
I wish you were more adaptable,Joan retorted. "You have more 
preconceived notions than any man I ever met. Why in the name of 
common sensein the name of . . . fair playcan't you get it into 
your head that I am different from the women you have knownand 
treat me accordingly? You surely ought to know I am different. I 
sailed my own schooner here--skipperif you please. I came here 
to make my living. You know that; I've told you often enough. It 
was Dad's planand I'm carrying it outjust as you are trying to 
carry out your Hughie's plan. Dad started to sail and sail until 
he could find the proper islands for planting. He diedand I 
sailed and sailed until I arrived here. Well--she shrugged her 
shoulders--the schooner is at the bottom of the sea. I can't sail 
any farthertherefore I remain here. And a planter I shall 
certainly be." 
You see--he began. 
I haven't got to the point,she interrupted. "Looking back on my 
conduct from the moment I first set foot on your beachI can see 
no false pretence that I have made about myself or my intentions. 
I was my natural self to you from the first. I told you my plans; 
and yet you sit there and calmly tell me that you don't know 
whether I really intend to become a planteror whether it is all 
obstinacy and pretence. Now let me assure youfor the last time
that I really and truly shall become a planterthanks to youor 
in spite of you. Do you want me for a partner?" 
But do you realize that I would be looked upon as the most foolish 
jackanapes in the South Seas if I took a young girl like you in 
with me here on Berande?he asked. 
No; decidedly not. But there you are again, worrying about what 
idiots and the generally evil-minded will think of you. I should 
have thought you had learned self-reliance on Berande, instead of 
needing to lean upon the moral support of every whisky-guzzling 
worthless South Sea vagabond.
He smiledand said
Yes, that is the worst of it. You are unanswerable. Yours is the 
logic of youth, and no man can answer that. The facts of life can, 
but they have no place in the logic of youth. Youth must try to 
live according to its logic. That is the only way to learn 
better.
There is no harm in trying?she interjected. 
But there is. That is the very point. The facts always smash 
youth's logic, and they usually smash youth's heart, too. It's 
like platonic friendships and . . . and all such things; they are 
all right in theory, but they won't work in practice. I used to 
believe in such things once. That is why I am here in the Solomons 
at present.
Joan was impatient. He saw that she could not understand. Life 
was too clearly simple to her. It was only the youth who was 
arguing with himthe youth with youth's pure-minded and invincible 
reasoning. Hers was only the boy's soul in a woman's body. He 
looked at her flushedeager faceat the great ropes of hair 
coiled on the small headat the rounded lines of the figure 
showing plainly through the home-made gownand at the eyes--boy's 
eyesunder coollevel brows--and he wondered why a being that was 
so much beautiful woman should be no woman at all. Why in the 
deuce was she not carroty-hairedor cross-eyedor hare-lipped? 
Suppose we do become partners on Berande,he saidat the same 
time experiencing a feeling of fright at the prospect that was 
tangled with a contradictory feeling of charmeither I'll fall in 
love with you, or you with me. Propinquity is dangerous, you know. 
In fact, it is propinquity that usually gives the facer to the 
logic of youth.
If you think I came to the Solomons to get married--she began 
wrathfully. "Wellthere are better men in Hawaiithat's all. 
Reallyyou knowthe way you harp on that one string would lead an 
unprejudiced listener to conclude that you are prurient-minded--" 
She stoppedappalled. His face had gone red and white with such 
abruptness as to startle her. He was patently very angry. She 
sipped the last of her coffeeand arosesaying
I'll wait until you are in a better temper before taking up the 
discussion again. That is what's the matter with you. You get 
angry too easily. Will you come swimming? The tide is just 
right.
If she were a man I'd bundle her off the plantation root and crop, 
whale-boat, Tahitian sailors, sovereigns, and all,he muttered to 
himself after she had left the room. 
But that was the trouble. She was not a manand where would she 
goand what would happen to her? 
He got to his feetlighted a cigaretteand her Stetson hat
hanging on the wall over her revolver-beltcaught his eye. That 
was the devil of ittoo. He did not want her to go. After all
she had not grown up yet. That was why her logic hurt. It was 
only the logic of youthbut it could hurt damnably at times. At 
any ratehe would resolve upon one thing: never again would he 
lose his temper with her. She was a child; he must remember that. 
He sighed heavily. But why in reasonableness had such a child been 
incorporated in such a woman's form? 
And as he continued to stare at her hat and thinkthe hurt he had 
received passed awayand he found himself cudgelling his brains 
for some way out of the muddle--for some method by which she could 
remain on Berande. A chaperone! Why not? He could send to Sydney 
on the first steamer for one. He could -
Her trilling laughter smote upon his reverieand he stepped to the 
screen-doorthrough which he could see her running down the path 
to the beach. At her heels ran two of her sailorsPapehara and 
Mahamemein scarlet lava-lavaswith naked sheath-knives gleaming 
in their belts. It was another sample of her wilfulness. Despite 
entreaties and commandsand warnings of the danger from sharks
she persisted in swimming at any and all timesand by special 
preferenceit seemed to himimmediately after eating. 
He watched her take the waterdiving cleanlylike a boyfrom the 
end of the little pier; and he watched her strike out with single 
overhand strokeher henchmen swimming a dozen feet on either side. 
He did not have much faith in their ability to beat off a hungry 
man-eaterthough he did believeimplicitlythat their lives 
would go bravely before hers in case of an attack. 
Straight out they swamtheir heads growing smaller and smaller. 
There was a slightrestless heave to the seaand soon the three 
heads were disappearing behind it with greater frequency. He 
strained his eyes to keep them in sightand finally fetched the 
telescope on to the veranda. A squall was making over from the 
direction of Florida; but thenshe and her men laughed at squalls 
and the white choppy sea at such times. She certainly could swim
he had long since concluded. That came of her training in Hawaii. 
But sharks were sharksand he had known of more than one good 
swimmer drowned in a tide-rip. 
The squall blackened the skybeat the ocean white where he had 
last seen the three headsand then blotted out sea and sky and 
everything with its deluge of rain. It passed onand Berande 
emerged in the bright sunshine as the three swimmers emerged from 
the sea. Sheldon slipped inside with the telescopeand through 
the screen-door watched her run up the pathshaking down her hair 
as she ranto the fresh-water shower under the house. 
On the veranda that afternoon he broached the proposition of a 
chaperone as delicately as he couldexplaining the necessity at 
Berande for such a bodya housekeeper to run the boys and the 
storeroomand perform divers other useful functions. When he had 
finishedhe waited anxiously for what Joan would say. 
Then you don't like the way I've been managing the house?was her 
first objection. And nextbrushing his attempted explanations 
asideOne of two things would happen. Either I should cancel our 
partnership agreement and go away, leaving you to get another 
chaperone to chaperone your chaperone; or else I'd take the old hen 
out in the whale-boat and drown her. Do you imagine for one moment 
that I sailed my schooner down here to this raw edge of the earth 
in order to put myself under a chaperone?
But really . . . er . . . you know a chaperone is a necessary 
evil,he objected. 
We've got along very nicely so far without one. Did I have one on 
the Miele? And yet I was the only woman on board. There are only 
three things I am afraid of--bumble-bees, scarlet fever, and 
chaperones. Ugh! the clucking, evil-minded monsters, finding wrong 
in everything, seeing sin in the most innocent actions, and 
suggesting sin--yes, causing sin--by their diseased imaginings.
Phew!Sheldon leaned back from the table in mock fear. 
You needn't worry about your bread and butter,he ventured. "If 
you fail at plantingyou would be sure to succeed as a writer-novels 
with a purposeyou know." 
I didn't think there were persons in the Solomons who needed such 
books,she retaliated. "But you are certainly one--you and your 
custodians of virtue." 
He wincedbut Joan rattled on with the platitudinous originality 
of youth. 
As if anything good were worth while when it has to be guarded and 
put in leg-irons and handcuffs in order to keep it good. Your 
desire for a chaperone as much as implies that I am that sort of 
creature. I prefer to be good because it is good to be good, 
rather than because I can't be bad because some argus-eyed old 
frump won't let me have a chance to be bad.
But it--it is not that,he put in. "It is what others will 
think." 
Let them think, the nasty-minded wretches! It is because men like 
you are afraid of the nasty-minded that you allow their opinions to 
rule you.
I am afraid you are a female Shelley,he replied; "and as such
you really drive me to become your partner in order to protect 
you." 
If you take me as a partner in order to protect me . . . I . . . I 
shan't be your partner, that's all. You'll drive me into buying 
Pari-Sulay yet.
All the more reason--he attempted. 
Do you know what I'll do?she demanded. "I'll find some man in 
the Solomons who won't want to protect me." 
Sheldon could not conceal the shock her words gave him. 
You don't mean that, you know,he pleaded. 
I do; I really do. I am sick and tired of this protection dodge. 
Don't forget for a moment that I am perfectly able to take care of 
myself. Besides, I have eight of the best protectors in the world-
my sailors.
You should have lived a thousand years ago,he laughedor a 
thousand years hence. You are very primitive, and equally supermodern. 
The twentieth century is no place for you.
But the Solomon Islands are. You were living like a savage when I 
came along and found you--eating nothing but tinned meat and scones 
that would have ruined the digestion of a camel. Anyway, I've 
remedied that; and since we are to be partners, it will stay 
remedied. You won't die of malnutrition, be sure of that.
If we enter into partnership,he announcedit must be 
thoroughly understood that you are not allowed to run the schooner. 
You can go down to Sydney and buy her, but a skipper we must have-
At so much additional expense, and most likely a whisky-drinking, 
irresponsible, and incapable man to boot. Besides, I'd have the 
business more at heart than any man we could hire. As for 
capability, I tell you I can sail all around the average broken 
captain or promoted able seaman you find in the South Seas. And 
you know I am a navigator.
But being my partner,he said coollymakes you none the less a 
lady.
Thank you for telling me that my contemplated conduct is 
unladylike.
She arosetears of anger and mortification in her eyesand went 
over to the phonograph. 
I wonder if all men are as ridiculous as you?she said. 
He shrugged his shoulders and smiled. Discussion was useless--he 
had learned that; and he was resolved to keep his temper. And 
before the day was out she capitulated. She was to go to Sydney on 
the first steamerpurchase the schoonerand sail back with an 
island skipper on board. And then she inveigled Sheldon into 
agreeing that she could take occasional cruises in the islands
though he was adamant when it came to a recruiting trip on Malaita. 
That was the one thing barred. 
And after it was all overand a terse and business-like agreement 
(by her urging) drawn up and signedSheldon paced up and down for 
a full hourmeditating upon how many different kinds of a fool he 
had made of himself. It was an impossible situationand yet no 
more impossible than the previous oneand no more impossible than 
the one that would have obtained had she gone off on her own and 
bought Pari-Sulay. He had never seen a more independent woman who 
stood more in need of a protector than this boy-minded girl who had 
landed on his beach with eight picturesque savagesa longbarrelled 
revolvera bag of goldand a gaudy merchandise of 
imagined romance and adventure. 
He had never read of anything to compare with it. The fictionists
as usualwere exceeded by fact. The whole thing was too 
preposterous to be true. He gnawed his moustache and smoked 
cigarette after cigarette. Satanback from a prowl around the 
compoundran up to him and touched his hand with a colddamp 
nose. Sheldon caressed the animal's earsthen threw himself into 
a chair and laughed heartily. What would the Commissioner of the 
Solomons think? What would his people at home think? And in the 
one breath he was glad that the partnership had been effected and 
sorry that Joan Lackland had ever come to the Solomons. Then he 
went inside and looked at himself in a hand-mirror. He studied the 
reflection long and thoughtfully and wonderingly. 
CHAPTER XIV--THE MARTHA 
They were deep in a game of billiards the next morningafter the 
eleven o'clock breakfastwhen Viaburi entered and announced
Big fella schooner close up.
Even as he spokethey heard the rumble of chain through hawsepipe
and from the veranda saw a big black-painted schooner
swinging to her just-caught anchor. 
It's a Yankee,Joan cried. "See that bow! Look at that 
elliptical stern! AhI thought so--" as the Stars and Stripes 
fluttered to the mast-head. 
Noa Noahat Sheldon's directionran the Union Jack up the flag-
staff. 
Now what is an American vessel doing down here?Joan asked. 
It's not a yacht, though I'll wager she can sail. Look! Her 
name! What is it?
Martha, San Francisco,Sheldon readlooking through the 
telescope. "It's the first Yankee I ever heard of in the Solomons. 
They are coming ashorewhoever they are. Andby Jovelook at 
those men at the oars. It's an all-white crew. Now what reason 
brings them here?" 
They're not proper sailors,Joan commented. "I'd be ashamed of a 
crew of black-boys that pulled in such fashion. Look at that 
fellow in the bow--the one just jumping out; he'd be more at home 
on a cow-pony." 
The boat's-crew scattered up and down the beachranging about with 
eager curiositywhile the two men who had sat in the stern-sheets 
opened the gate and came up the path to the bungalow. One of them
a tall and slender manwas clad in white ducks that fitted him 
like a semi-military uniform. The other manin nondescript 
garments that were both of the sea and shoreand that must have 
been uncomfortably hotslouched and shambled like an overgrown 
ape. To complete the illusionhis face seemed to sprout in all 
directions with a densebushy mass of red whiskerswhile his eyes 
were small and sharp and restless. 
Sheldonwho had gone to the head of the stepsintroduced them to 
Joan. The bewhiskered individualwho looked like a Scotsmanhad 
the Teutonic name of Von Blixand spoke with a strong American 
accent. The tall man in the well-fitting duckswho gave the 
English name of Tudor--John Tudor--talked purely-enunciated English 
such as any cultured American would talksave for the fact that it 
was most delicately and subtly touched by a faint German accent. 
Joan decided that she had been helped to identify the accent by the 
short German-looking moustache that did not conceal the mouth and 
its full red lipswhich would have formed a Cupid's bow but for 
some harshness or severity of spirit that had moulded them 
masculinely. 
Von Blix was rough and boorishbut Tudor was gracefully easy in 
everything he didor lookedor said. His blue eyes sparkled and 
flashedhis clean-cut mobile features were an index to his 
slightest shades of feeling and expression. He bubbled with 
enthusiasmsand his faintest smile or lightest laugh seemed 
spontaneous and genuine. But it was only occasionally at first 
that he spokefor Von Blix told their story and stated their 
errand. 
They were on a gold-hunting expedition. He was the leaderand 
Tudor was his lieutenant. All hands--and there were twenty-eight-were 
shareholdersin varying proportionsin the adventure. 
Several were sailorsbut the large majority were minersculled 
from all the camps from Mexico to the Arctic Ocean. It was the old 
and ever-untiring pursuit of goldand they had come to the 
Solomons to get it. Part of themunder the leadership of Tudor
were to go up the Balesuna and penetrate the mountainous heart of 
Guadalcanarwhile the Marthaunder Von Blixsailed away for 
Malaita to put through similar exploration. 
And so,said Von Blixfor Mr. Tudor's expedition we must have 
some black-boys. Can we get them from you?
Of course we will pay,Tudor broke in. "You have only to charge 
what you consider them worth. You pay them six pounds a year
don't you?" 
In the first place we can't spare them,Sheldon answered. "We 
are short of them on the plantation as it is." 
WE?Tudor asked quickly. "Then you are a firm or a partnership? 
I understood at Guvutu that you were alonethat you had lost your 
partner." 
Sheldon inclined his head toward Joanand as he spoke she felt 
that he had become a trifle stiff. 
Miss Lackland has become interested in the plantation since then. 
But to return to the boys. We can't spare them, and besides, they 
would be of little use. You couldn't get them to accompany you 
beyond Binu, which is a short day's work with the boats from here. 
They are Malaita-men, and they are afraid of being eaten. They 
would desert you at the first opportunity. You could get the Binu 
men to accompany you another day's journey, through the grass
lands, but at the first roll of the foothills look for them to turn 
back. They likewise are disinclined to being eaten.
Is it as bad as that?asked Von Blix. 
The interior of Guadalcanar has never been explored,Sheldon 
explained. "The bushmen are as wild men as are to be found 
anywhere in the world to-day. I have never seen one. I have never 
seen a man who has seen one. They never come down to the coast
though their scouting parties occasionally eat a coast native who 
has wandered too far inland. Nobody knows anything about them. 
They don't even use tobacco--have never learned its use. The 
Austrian expedition--scientistsyou know--got part way in before 
it was cut to pieces. The monument is up the beach there several 
miles. Only one man got back to the coast to tell the tale. And 
now you have all I or any other man knows of the inside of 
Guadalcanar." 
But gold--have you heard of gold?Tudor asked impatiently. "Do 
you know anything about gold?" 
Sheldon smiledwhile the two visitors hung eagerly upon his words. 
You can go two miles up the Balesuna and wash colours from the 
gravel. I've done it often. There is gold undoubtedly back in the 
mountains.
Tudor and Von Blix looked triumphantly at each other. 
Old Wheatsheaf's yarn was true, then,Tudor saidand Von Blix 
nodded. "And if Malaita turns out as well--" 
Tudor broke off and looked at Joan. 
It was the tale of this old beachcomber that brought us here,he 
explained. "Von Blix befriended him and was told the secret." He 
turned and addressed Sheldon. "I think we shall prove that white 
men have been through the heart of Guadalcanar long before the time 
of the Austrian expedition." 
Sheldon shrugged his shoulders. 
We have never heard of it down here,he said simply. Then he 
addressed Von Blix. "As to the boysyou couldn't use them farther 
than Binuand I'll lend you as many as you want as far as that. 
How many of your party are goingand how soon will you start?" 
Ten,said Tudor; "nine men and myself." 
And you should be able to start day after to-morrow,Von Blix 
said to him. "The boats should practically be knocked together 
this afternoon. To-morrow should see the outfit portioned and 
packed. As for the MarthaMr. Sheldonwe'll rush the stuff 
ashore this afternoon and sail by sundown." 
As the two men returned down the path to their boatSheldon 
regarded Joan quizzically. 
There's romance for you,he saidand adventure--gold-hunting 
among the cannibals.
A title for a book,she cried. "Orbetter yet'Gold-Hunting 
Among the Head-Hunters.' My! wouldn't it sell!" 
And now aren't you sorry you became a cocoanut planter?he 
teased. "Think of investing in such an adventure." 
If I did,she retortedVon Blix wouldn't be finicky about my 
joining in the cruise to Malaita.
I don't doubt but what he would jump at it.
What do you think of them?she asked. 
Oh, old Von Blix is all right, a solid sort of chap in his 
fashion; but Tudor is fly-away--too much on the surface, you know. 
If it came to being wrecked on a desert island, I'd prefer Von 
Blix.
I don't quite understand,Joan objected. "What have you against 
Tudor?" 
You remember Browning's 'Last Duchess'?
She nodded. 
Well, Tudor reminds me of her--
But she was delightful.
So she was. But she was a woman. One expects something different 
from a man--more control, you know, more restraint, more 
deliberation. A man must be more solid, more solid and steadygoing 
and less effervescent. A man of Tudor's type gets on my 
nerves. One demands more repose from a man.
Joan felt that she did not quite agree with his judgment; and
somehowSheldon caught her feeling and was disturbed. He 
remembered noting how her eyes had brightened as she talked with 
the newcomer--confound it allwas he getting jealous? he asked 
himself. Why shouldn't her eyes brighten? What concern was it of 
his? 
A second boat had been loweredand the outfit of the shore party 
was landed rapidly. A dozen of the crew put the knocked-down boats 
together on the beach. There were five of these craft--lean and 
narrowwith flaring sidesand remarkably long. Each was equipped 
with three paddles and several iron-shod poles. 
You chaps certainly seem to know river-work,Sheldon told one of 
the carpenters. 
The man spat a mouthful of tobacco-juice into the white sandand 
answered
We use 'em in Alaska. They're modelled after the Yukon polingboats, 
and you can bet your life they're crackerjacks. This 
creek'll be a snap alongside some of them Northern streams. Five 
hundred pounds in one of them boats, an' two men can snake it along 
in a way that'd surprise you.
At sunset the Martha broke out her anchor and got under way
dipping her flag and saluting with a bomb gun. The Union Jack ran 
up and down the staffand Sheldon replied with his brass signalcannon. 
The miners pitched their tents in the compoundand cooked 
on the beachwhile Tudor dined with Joan and Sheldon. 
Their guest seemed to have been everywhere and seen everything and 
met everybodyandencouraged by Joanhis talk was largely upon 
his own adventures. He was an adventurer of adventurersand by 
his own account had been born into adventure. Descended from old 
New England stockhis father a consul-generalhe had been born in 
Germanyin which country he had received his early education and 
his accent. Thenstill a boyhe had rejoined his father in 
Turkeyand accompanied him later to Persiahis father having been 
appointed Minister to that country. 
Tudor had always been a wandererand with facile wit and quick 
vivid description he leaped from episode and place to episode and 
placerelating his experiences seemingly not because they were 
hisbut for the sake of their bizarreness and uniquenessfor the 
unusual incident or the laughable situation. He had gone through 
South American revolutionsbeen a Rough Rider in Cubaa scout in 
South Africaa war correspondent in the Russo-Japanese war. He 
had mushed dogs in the Klondikewashed gold from the sands of 
Nomeand edited a newspaper in San Francisco. The President of 
the United States was his friend. He was equally at home in the 
clubs of London and the Continentthe Grand Hotel at Yokohamaand 
the selector's shanties in the Never-Never country. He had shot 
big game in Siampearled in the Paumotusvisited Tolstoyseen 
the Passion Playand crossed the Andes on mule-back; while he was 
a living directory of the fever holes of West Africa. 
Sheldon leaned back in his chair on the verandasipping his coffee 
and listening. In spite of himself he felt touched by the charm of 
the man who had led so varied a life. And yet Sheldon was not 
comfortable. It seemed to him that the man addressed himself 
particularly to Joan. His words and smiles were directed 
impartially toward both of themyet Sheldon was certainhad the 
two men of them been alonethat the conversation would have been 
along different lines. Tudor had seen the effect on Joan and 
deliberately continued the flow of reminiscencenetting her in the 
glamour of romance. Sheldon watched her rapt attentionlistened 
to her spontaneous laughterquick questionsand passing 
judgmentsand felt grow within him the dawning consciousness that 
he loved her. 
So he was very quiet and almost sadthough at times he was aware 
of a distinct irritation against his guestand he even speculated 
as to what percentage of Tudor's tale was true and how any of it 
could be proved or disproved. In this connectionas if the scene 
had been prepared by a clever playwrightUtami came upon the 
veranda to report to Joan the capture of a crocodile in the trap 
they had made for her. 
Tudor's faceilluminated by the match with which he was lighting 
his cigarettecaught Utami's eyeand Utami forgot to report to 
his mistress. 
Hello, Tudor,he saidwith a familiarity that startled Sheldon. 
The Polynesian's hand went outand Tudorshaking itwas staring 
into his face. 
Who is it? he asked. "I can't see you." 
Utami.
And who the dickens is Utami? Where did I ever meet you, my man?
You no forget the Huahine?Utami chided. "Last time Huahine 
sail?" 
Tudor gripped the Tahitian's hand a second time and shook it with 
genuine heartiness. 
There was only one kanaka who came out of the Huahine that last 
voyage, and that kanaka was Joe. The deuce take it, man, I'm glad 
to see you, though I never heard your new name before.
Yes, everybody speak me Joe along the Huahine. Utami my name all 
the time, just the same.
But what are you doing here?Tudor askedreleasing the sailor's 
hand and leaning eagerly forward. 
Me sail along Missie Lackalanna her schooner Miele. We go Tahiti, 
Raiatea, Tahaa, Bora-Bora, Manua, Tutuila, Apia, Savaii, and Fiji 
Islands--plenty Fiji Islands. Me stop along Missie Lackalanna in 
Solomons. Very soon she catch other schooner.
He and I were the two survivors of the wreck of the Huahine,
Tudor explained to the others. "Fifty-seven all told on board when 
we sailed from Huapaand Joe and I were the only two that ever set 
foot on land again. Hurricaneyou knowin the Paumotus. That 
was when I was after pearls." 
And you never told me, Utami, that you'd been wrecked in a 
hurricane,Joan said reproachfully. 
The big Tahitian shifted his weight and flashed his teeth in a 
conciliating smile. 
Me no t'ink nothing 't all,he said. 
He half-turnedas if to departby his manner indicating that he 
considered it time to go while yet he desired to remain. 
All right, Utami,Tudor said. "I'll see you in the morning and 
have a yarn." 
He saved my life, the beggar,Tudor explainedas the Tahitian 
strode away and with heavy softness of foot went down the steps. 
Swim! I never met a better swimmer.
And thereatsolicited by JoanTudor narrated the wreck of the 
Huahine; while Sheldon smoked and ponderedand decided that 
whatever the man's shortcomings werehe was at least not a liar. 
CHAPTER XV--A DISCOURSE ON MANNERS 
The days passedand Tudor seemed loath to leave the hospitality of 
Berande. Everything was ready for the startbut he lingered on
spending much time in Joan's company and thereby increasing the 
dislike Sheldon had taken to him. He went swimming with herin 
point of rashness exceeding her; and dynamited fish with her
diving among the hungry ground-sharks and contesting with them for 
possession of the stunned preyuntil he earned the approval of the 
whole Tahitian crew. Arahu challenged him to tear a fish from a 
shark's jawsleaving half to the shark and bringing the other half 
himself to the surface; and Tudor performed the feata flip from 
the sandpaper hide of the astonished shark scraping several inches 
of skin from his shoulder. And Joan was delightedwhile Sheldon
looking onrealized that here was the hero of her adventure-dreams 
coming true. She did not care for lovebut he felt that if ever 
she did love it would be that sort of a man--"a man who exhibited 
was his way of putting it. 
He felt himself handicapped in the presence of Tudor, who had the 
gift of making a show of all his qualities. Sheldon knew himself 
for a brave man, wherefore he made no advertisement of the fact. 
He knew that just as readily as the other would he dive among 
ground-sharks to save a life, but in that fact he could find no 
sanction for the foolhardy act of diving among sharks for the half 
of a fish. The difference between them was that he kept the 
curtain of his shop window down. Life pulsed steadily and deep in 
him, and it was not his nature needlessly to agitate the surface so 
that the world could see the splash he was making. And the effect 
of the other's amazing exhibitions was to make him retreat more 
deeply within himself and wrap himself more thickly than ever in 
the nerveless, stoical calm of his race. 
You are so stupid the last few days Joan complained to him. 
One would think you were sickor biliousor something. You 
don't seem to have an idea in your head above black labour and 
cocoanuts. What is the matter?" 
Sheldon smiled and beat a further retreat within himselflistening 
the while to Joan and Tudor propounding the theory of the strong 
arm by which the white man ordered life among the lesser breeds. 
As he listened Sheldon realizedas by revelationthat that was 
precisely what he was doing. While they philosophized about it he 
was living itplacing the strong hand of his race firmly on the 
shoulders of the lesser breeds that laboured on Berande or menaced 
it from afar. But why talk about it? he asked himself. It was 
sufficient to do it and be done with it. 
He said as muchdryly and quietlyand found himself involved in a 
discussionwith Joan and Tudor siding against himin which a more 
astounding charge than ever he had dreamed of was made against the 
very English control and reserve of which he was secretly proud. 
The Yankees talk a lot about what they do and have done,Tudor 
saidand are looked down upon by the English as braggarts. But 
the Yankee is only a child. He does not know effectually how to 
brag. He talks about it, you see. But the Englishman goes him one 
better by not talking about it. The Englishman's proverbial lack 
of bragging is a subtler form of brag after all. It is really 
clever, as you will agree.
I never thought of it before,Joan cried. "Of course. An 
Englishman performs some terrifically heroic exploitand is very 
modest and reserved--refuses to talk about it at all--and the 
effect is that by his silence he as much as says'I do things like 
this every day. It is as easy as rolling off a log. You ought to 
see the really heroic things I could do if they ever came my way. 
But this little thingthis little episode--reallydon't you know
I fail to see anything in it remarkable or unusual.' As for meif 
I went up in a powder explosionor saved a hundred livesI'd want 
all my friends to hear about itand their friends as well. I'd be 
prouder than Lucifer over the affair. ConfessMr. Sheldondon't 
you feel proud down inside when you've done something daring or 
courageous?" 
Sheldon nodded. 
Then,she pressed home the pointisn't disguising that pride 
under a mask of careless indifference equivalent to telling a lie?
Yes, it is,he admitted. "But we tell similar lies every day. 
It is a matter of trainingand the English are better trained
that is all. Your countrymen will be trained as well in time. As 
Mr. Tudor saidthe Yankees are young." 
Thank goodness we haven't begun to tell such lies yet!was Joan's 
ejaculation. 
Oh, but you have,Sheldon said quickly. "You were telling me a 
lie of that order only the other day. You remember when you were 
going up the lantern-halyards hand over hand? Your face was the 
personification of duplicity." 
It was no such thing.
Pardon me a moment,he went on. "Your face was as calm and 
peaceful as though you were reclining in a steamer-chair. To look 
at your face one would have inferred that carrying the weight of 
your body up a rope hand over hand was a very commonplace 
accomplishment--as easy as rolling off a log. And you needn't tell 
meMiss Lacklandthat you didn't make faces the first time you 
tried to climb a rope. Butlike any circus athleteyou trained 
yourself out of the face-making period. You trained your face to 
hide your feelingsto hide the exhausting effort your muscles were 
making. It wasto quote Mr. Tudora subtler exhibition of 
physical prowess. And that is all our English reserve is--a mere 
matter of training. Certainly we are proud inside of the things we 
do and have doneproud as Lucifer--yesand prouder. But we have 
grown upand no longer talk about such things." 
I surrender,Joan cried. "You are not so stupid after all." 
Yes, you have us there,Tudor admitted. "But you wouldn't have 
had us if you hadn't broken your training rules." 
How do you mean?
By talking about it.
Joan clapped her hands in approval. Tudor lighted a fresh 
cigarettewhile Sheldon sat onimperturbably silent. 
He got you there,Joan challenged. "Why don't you crush him?" 
Really, I can't think of anything to say,Sheldon said. "I know 
my position is soundand that is satisfactory enough." 
You might retort,she suggestedthat when an adult is with 
kindergarten children he must descend to kindergarten idioms in 
order to make himself intelligible. That was why you broke 
training rules. It was the only way to make us children 
understand.
You've deserted in the heat of the battle, Miss Lackland, and gone 
over to the enemy,Tudor said plaintively. 
But she was not listening. Insteadshe was looking intently 
across the compound and out to sea. They followed her gazeand 
saw a green light and the loom of a vessel's sails. 
I wonder if it's the Martha come back,Tudor hazarded. 
No, the sidelight is too low,Joan answered. "Besidesthey've 
got the sweeps out. Don't you hear them? They wouldn't be 
sweeping a big vessel like the Martha." 
Besides, the Martha has a gasoline engine--twenty-five horsepower,
Tudor added. 
Just the sort of a craft for us,Joan said wistfully to Sheldon. 
I really must see if I can't get a schooner with an engine. I 
might get a second-hand engine put in.
That would mean the additional expense of an engineer's wages,he 
objected. 
But it would pay for itself by quicker passages,she argued; "and 
it would be as good as insurance. I know. I've knocked about 
amongst reefs myself. Besidesif you weren't so mediaevalI 
could be skipper and save more than the engineer's wages." 
He did not reply to her thrustand she glanced at him. He was 
looking out over the waterand in the lantern light she noted the 
lines of his face--strongsterndoggedthe mouth almost chaste 
but firmer and thinner-lipped than Tudor's. For the first time she 
realized the quality of his strengththe calm and quiet of itits 
simple integrity and reposeful determination. She glanced quickly 
at Tudor on the other side of her. It was a handsomer faceone 
that was more immediately pleasing. But she did not like the 
mouth. It was made for kissingand she abhorred kisses. This was 
not a deliberately achieved concept; it came to her in the form of 
a faint and vaguely intangible repulsion. For the moment she knew 
a fleeting doubt of the man. Perhaps Sheldon was right in his 
judgment of the other. She did not knowand it concerned her 
little; for boatsand the seaand the things and happenings of 
the sea were of far more vital interest to her than menand the 
next moment she was staring through the warm tropic darkness at the 
loom of the sails and the steady green of the moving sidelightand 
listening eagerly to the click of the sweeps in the rowlocks. In 
her mind's eye she could see the straining naked forms of black men 
bending rhythmically to the workand somewhere on that strange 
deck she knew was the inevitable master-manconning the vessel in 
to its anchoragepeering at the dim tree-line of the shore
judging the deceitful night-distancesfeeling on his cheek the 
first fans of the land breeze that was even then beginning to blow
weighingthinkingmeasuringgauging the score or more of evershifting 
forcesthrough whichby whichand in spite of which he 
directed the steady equilibrium of his course. She knew it because 
she loved itand she was alive to it as only a sailor could be. 
Twice she heard the splash of the leadand listened intently for 
the cry that followed. Once a man's voice spokelowimperative
issuing an orderand she thrilled with the delight of it. It was 
only a direction to the man at the wheel to port his helm. She 
watched the slight altering of the courseand knew that it was for 
the purpose of enabling the flat-hauled sails to catch those first 
fans of the land breezeand she waited for the same low voice to 
utter the one word "Steady!" And again she thrilled when it did 
utter it. Once more the lead splashedand "Eleven fadom" was the 
resulting cry. "Let go!" the low voice came to her through the 
darknessfollowed by the surging rumble of the anchor-chain. The 
clicking of the sheaves in the blocks as the sails ran downheadsails 
firstwas music to her; and she detected on the instant the 
jamming of a jib-downhauland almost saw the impatient jerk with 
which the sailor must have cleared it. Nor did she take interest 
in the two men beside her till both lightsred and greencame 
into view as the anchor checked the onward way. 
Sheldon was wondering as to the identity of the craftwhile Tudor 
persisted in believing it might be the Martha. 
It's the Minerva,Joan said decidedly. 
How do you know?Sheldon askedsceptical of her certitude. 
It's a ketch to begin with. And besides, I could tell anywhere 
the rattle of her main peak-blocks--they're too large for the 
halyard.
A dark figure crossed the compound diagonally from the beach gate
where whoever it was had been watching the vessel. 
Is that you, Utami?Joan called. 
No, Missie; me Matapuu,was the answer. 
What vessel is it?
Me t'ink Minerva.
Joan looked triumphantly at Sheldonwho bowed. 
If Matapuu says so it must be so,he murmured. 
But when Joan Lackland says so, you doubt,she criedjust as 
you doubt her ability as a skipper. But never mind, you'll be 
sorry some day for all your unkindness. There's the boat lowering 
now, and in five minutes we'll be shaking hands with Christian 
Young.
Lalaperu brought out the glasses and cigarettes and the eternal 
whisky and sodaand before the five minutes were past the gate 
clicked and Christian Youngtawny and goldengentle of voice and 
look and handcame up the bungalow steps and joined them. 
CHAPTER XVI--THE GIRL WHO HAD NOT GROWN UP 
Newsas usualChristian Young brought--news of the drinking at 
Guvutuwhere the men boasted that they drank between drinks; news 
of the new rifles adrift on Ysabelof the latest murders on 
Malaitaof Tom Butler's sickness on Santa Ana; and last and most 
importantnews that the Matambo had gone on a reef in the 
Shortlands and would be laid off one run for repairs. 
That means five weeks more before you can sail for Sydney,
Sheldon said to Joan. 
And that we are losing precious time,she added ruefully. 
If you want to go to Sydney, the Upolu sails from Tulagi to-morrow 
afternoon,Young said. 
But I thought she was running recruits for the Germans in Samoa,
she objected. "At any rateI could catch her to Samoaand change 
at Apia to one of the Weir Line freighters. It's a long way 
aroundbut still it would save time." 
This time the Upolu is going straight to Sydney,Young explained. 
She's going to dry-dock, you see; and you can catch her as late as 
five to-morrow afternoon--at least, so her first officer told me.
But I've got to go to Guvutu first.Joan looked at the men with 
a whimsical expression. "I've some shopping to do. I can't wear 
these Berande curtains into Sydney. I must buy cloth at Guvutu and 
make myself a dress during the voyage down. I'll start 
immediately--in an hour. Lalaperuyou bring 'm one fella Adamu 
Adam along me. Tell 'm that fella Ornfiri make 'm kai-kai take 
along whale-boat." She rose to her feetlooking at Sheldon. "And 
youpleasehave the boys carry down the whale-boat--my boatyou 
know. I'll be off in an hour." 
Both Sheldon and Tudor looked at their watches. 
It's an all-night row,Sheldon said. "You might wait till 
morning--" 
And miss my shopping? No, thank you. Besides, the Upolu is not a 
regular passenger steamer, and she is just as liable to sail ahead 
of time as on time. And from what I hear about those Guvutu 
sybarites, the best time to shop will be in the morning. And now 
you'll have to excuse me, for I've got to pack.
I'll go over with you,Sheldon announced. 
Let me run you over in the Minerva,said Young. 
She shook her head laughingly. 
I'm going in the whale-boat. One would think, from all your 
solicitude, that I'd never been away from home before. You, Mr. 
Sheldon, as my partner, I cannot permit to desert Berande and your 
work out of a mistaken notion of courtesy. If you won't permit me 
to be skipper, I won't permit your galivanting over the sea as 
protector of young women who don't need protection. And as for 
you, Captain Young, you know very well that you just left Guvutu 
this morning, that you are bound for Marau, and that you said 
yourself that in two hours you are getting under way again.
But may I not see you safely across?Tudor askeda pleading note 
in his voice that rasped on Sheldon's nerves. 
No, no, and again no,she cried. "You've all got your work to 
doand so have I. I came to the Solomons to worknot to be 
escorted about like a doll. For that matterhere's my escortand 
there are seven more like him." 
Adamu Adam stood beside hertowering above heras he towered 
above the three white men. The clinging cotton undershirt he wore 
could not hide the bulge of his tremendous muscles. 
Look at his fist,said Tudor. "I'd hate to receive a punch from 
it." 
I don't blame you.Joan laughed reminiscently. "I saw him hit 
the captain of a Swedish bark on the beach at Levukain the Fijis. 
It was the captain's fault. I saw it all myselfand it was 
splendid. Adamu only hit him onceand he broke the man's arm. 
You rememberAdamu?" 
The big Tahitian smiled and noddedhis black eyessoft and deerlike
seeming to give the lie to so belligerent a nature. 
We start in an hour in the whale-boat for Guvutu, big brother,
Joan said to him. "Tell your brothersall of themso that they 
can get ready. We catch the Upolu for Sydney. You will all come 
alongand sail back to the Solomons in the new schooner. Take 
your extra shirts and dungarees along. Plenty cold weather down 
there. Now run alongand tell them to hurry. Leave the guns 
behind. Turn them over to Mr. Sheldon. We won't need them." 
If you are really bent upon going--Sheldon began. 
That's settled long ago,she answered shortly. "I'm going to 
pack now. But I'll tell you what you can do for me--issue some 
tobacco and other stuff they want to my men." 
An hour later the three men had shaken hands with Joan down on the 
beach. She gave the signaland the boat shoved offsix men at 
the oarsthe seventh man for'ardand Adamu Adam at the steeringsweep. 
Joan was standing up in the stern-sheetsreiterating her 
good-byes--a slim figure of a woman in the tight-fitting jacket she 
had worn ashore from the wreckthe long-barrelled Colt's revolver 
hanging from the loose belt around her waisther clear-cut face 
like a boy's under the Stetson hat that failed to conceal the heavy 
masses of hair beneath. 
You'd better get into shelter,she called to them. "There's a 
big squall coming. And I hope you've got plenty of chain out
Captain Young. Good-bye! Good-byeeverybody!" 
Her last words came out of the darknesswhich wrapped itself 
solidly about the boat. Yet they continued to stare into the 
blackness in the direction in which the boat had disappeared
listening to the steady click of the oars in the rowlocks until it 
faded away and ceased. 
She is only a girl,Christian Young said with slow solemnity. 
The discovery seemed to have been made on the spur of the moment. 
She is only a girl,he repeated with greater solemnity. 
A dashed pretty one, and a good traveller,Tudor laughed. "She 
certainly has spunkehSheldon?" 
Yes, she is brave,was the reluctant answer for Sheldon did not 
feel disposed to talk about her. 
That's the American of it,Tudor went on. "Pushand goand 
energyand independence. What do you thinkskipper?" 
I think she is young, very young, only a girl,replied the 
captain of the Minervacontinuing to stare into the blackness that 
hid the sea. 
The blackness seemed suddenly to increase in densityand they 
stumbled up the beachfeeling their way to the gate. 
Watch out for nuts,Sheldon warnedas the first blast of the 
squall shrieked through the palms. They joined hands and staggered 
up the pathwith the ripe cocoanuts thudding in a monstrous rain 
all around them. They gained the verandawhere they sat in 
silence over their whiskyeach man staring straight out to sea
where the wildly swinging riding-light of the Minerva could be seen 
in the lulls of the driving rain. 
Somewhere out thereSheldon reflectedwas Joan Lacklandthe girl 
who had not grown upthe woman good to look uponwith only a 
boy's mind and a boy's desiresleaving Berande amid storm and 
conflict in much the same manner that she had first arrivedin the 
stern-sheets of her whale-boatAdamu Adam steeringher savage 
crew bending to the oars. And she was taking her Stetson hat with 
heralong with the cartridge-belt and the long-barrelled revolver. 
He suddenly discovered an immense affection for those fripperies of 
hers at which he had secretly laughed when first he saw them. He 
became aware of the sentimental direction in which his fancy was 
leading himand felt inclined to laugh. But he did not laugh. 
The next moment he was busy visioning the hatand beltand 
revolver. Undoubtedly this was lovehe thoughtand he felt a 
tiny glow of pride in him in that the Solomons had not succeeded in 
killing all his sentiment. 
An hour laterChristian Young stood upknocked out his pipeand 
prepared to go aboard and get under way. 
She's all right,he saidapropos of nothing spokenand yet 
distinctly relevant to what was in each of their minds. "She's got 
a good boat's-crewand she's a sailor herself. Good-nightMr. 
Sheldon. Anything I can do for you down Marau-way?" He turned and 
pointed to a widening space of starry sky. "It's going to be a 
fine night after all. With this favouring bit of breeze she has 
sail on alreadyand she'll make Guvutu by daylight. Good-night." 
I guess I'll turn in, old man,Tudor saidrising and placing his 
glass on the table. "I'll start the first thing in the morning. 
It's been disgraceful the way I've been hanging on here. Goodnight." 
Sheldonsitting on alonewondered if the other man would have 
decided to pull out in the morning had Joan not sailed away. Well
there was one bit of consolation in it: Joan had certainly 
lingered at Berande for no mannot even Tudor. "I start in an 
hour"--her words rang in his brainand under his eyelids he could 
see her as she stood up and uttered them. He smiled. The instant 
she heard the news she had made up her mind to go. It was not very 
flattering to manbut what could any man count in her eyes when a 
schooner waiting to be bought in Sydney was in the wind? What a 
creature! What a creature! 
Berande was a lonely place to Sheldon in the days that followed. 
In the morning after Joan's departurehe had seen Tudor's 
expedition off on its way up the Balesuna; in the late afternoon
through his telescopehe had seen the smoke of the Upolu that was 
bearing Joan away to Sydney; and in the evening he sat down to 
dinner in solitary statedevoting more of his time to looking at 
her empty chair than to his food. He never came out on the veranda 
without glancing first of all at her grass house in the corner of 
the compound; and one eveningidly knocking the balls about on the 
billiard tablehe came to himself to find himself standing staring 
at the nail upon which from the first she had hung her Stetson hat 
and her revolver-belt. 
Why should he care for her? he demanded of himself angrily. She 
was certainly the last woman in the world he would have thought of 
choosing for himself. Never had he encountered one who had so 
thoroughly irritated himrasped his feelingssmashed his 
conventionsand violated nearly every attribute of what had been 
his ideal of woman. Had he been too long away from the world? Had 
he forgotten what the race of women was like? Was it merely a case 
of propinquity? And she wasn't really a woman. She was a 
masquerader. Under all her seeming of womanshe was a boy
playing a boy's pranksdiving for fish amongst sharkssporting a 
revolverlonging for adventureandwhat was moregoing out in 
search of it in her whale-boatalong with her savage islanders and 
her bag of sovereigns. But he loved her--that was the point of it 
alland he did not try to evade it. He was not sorry that it was 
so. He loved her--that was the overwhelmingastounding fact. 
Once again he discovered a big enthusiasm for Berande. All the 
bubble-illusions concerning the life of the tropical planter had 
been pricked by the stern facts of the Solomons. Following the 
death of Hughiehe had resolved to muddle along somehow with the 
plantation; but this resolve had not been based upon desire. 
Insteadit was based upon the inherent stubbornness of his nature 
and his dislike to give over an attempted task. 
But now it was different. Berande meant everything. It must 
succeed--not merely because Joan was a partner in itbut because 
he wanted to make that partnership permanently binding. Three more 
years and the plantation would be a splendid-paying investment. 
They could then take yearly trips to Australiaand oftener; and an 
occasional run home to England--or Hawaiiwould come as a matter 
of course. 
He spent his evenings poring over accountsor making endless 
calculations based on cheaper freights for copra and on the 
possible maximum and minimum market prices for that staple of 
commerce. His days were spent out on the plantation. He undertook 
more clearing of bush; and clearing and planting went onunder his 
personal supervisionat a faster pace than ever before. He 
experimented with premiums for extra work performed by the black 
boysand yearned continually for more of them to put to work. Not 
until Joan could return on the schooner would this be possiblefor 
the professional recruiters were all under long contracts to the 
Fulcrum BrothersMorgan and Raffand the FiresPhilp Company; 
while the Flibberty-Gibbet was wholly occupied in running about 
among his widely scattered trading stationswhich extended from 
the coast of New Georgia in one direction to Ulava and Sikiana in 
the other. Blacks he must haveandif Joan were fortunate in 
getting a schoonerthree months at least must elapse before the 
first recruits could be landed on Berande. 
A week after the Upolu's departurethe Malakula dropped anchor and 
her skipper came ashore for a game of billiards and to gossip until 
the land breeze sprang up. Besidesas he told his super-cargohe 
simply had to come ashorenot merely to deliver the large package 
of seeds with full instructions for planting from Joanbut to 
shock Sheldon with the little surprise born of information he was 
bringing with him. 
Captain Auckland played the billiards firstand it was not until 
he was comfortably seated in a steamer-chairhis second whisky 
securely in his handthat he let off his bomb. 
A great piece, that Miss Lackland of yours,he chuckled. "Claims 
to be a part-owner of Berande. Says she's your partner. Is that 
straight?" 
Sheldon nodded coldly. 
You don't say? That is a surprise! Well, she hasn't convinced 
Guvutu or Tulagi of it. They're pretty used to irregular things 
over there, but--ha! ha!- he stopped to have his laugh out and to 
mop his bald head with a trade handkerchief. "But that partnership 
yarn of hers was too big to swallowthough it gave them the excuse 
for a few more drinks." 
There is nothing irregular about it. It is an ordinary business 
transaction.Sheldon strove to act as though such transactions 
were quite the commonplace thing on plantations in the Solomons. 
She invested something like fifteen hundred pounds in Berande--
So she said.
And she has gone to Sydney on business for the plantation.
Oh, no, she hasn't.
I beg pardon?Sheldon queried. 
I said she hasn't, that's all.
But didn't the Upolu sail? I could have sworn I saw her smoke 
last Tuesday afternoon, late, as she passed Savo.
The Upolu sailed all right.Captain Auckland sipped his whisky 
with provoking slowness. "Only Miss Lackland wasn't a passenger." 
Then where is she?
At Guvutu, last I saw of her. She was going to Sydney to buy a 
schooner, wasn't she?
Yes, yes.
That's what she said. Well, she's bought one, though I wouldn't 
give her ten shillings for it if a nor'wester blows up, and it's 
about time we had one. This has been too long a spell of good 
weather to last.
If you came here to excite my curiosity, old man,Sheldon said
you've certainly succeeded. Now go ahead and tell me in a 
straightforward way what has happened. What schooner? Where is 
it? How did she happen to buy it?
First, the schooner Martha,the skipper answeredchecking his 
replies off on his fingers. "Secondthe Martha is on the outside 
reef at Poonga-Poongalooted clean of everything portableand 
ready to go to pieces with the first bit of lively sea. And third
Miss Lackland bought her at auction. She was knocked down to her 
for fifty-five quid by the third-assistant-resident-commissioner. 
I ought to know. I bid fifty myselffor Morgan and Raff. My 
wordweren't they hot! I told them to go to the deviland that 
it was their fault for limiting me to fifty quid when they thought 
the chance to salve the Martha was worth more. You seethey 
weren't expecting competition. Fulcrum Brothers had no 
representative presentneither had FiresPhilp Companyand the 
only man to be afraid of was Nielsen's agentSquiresand him they 
got drunk and sound asleep over in Guvutu. 
'Twenty,' says I, for my bid. 'Twenty-five,' says the little 
girl. 'Thirty,' says I. 'Forty,' says she. 'Fifty,' says I. 
'Fifty-five,' says she. And there I was stuck. 'Hold on,' says I; 
'wait till I see my owners.' 'No, you don't,' says she. 'It's 
customary,' says I. 'Not anywhere in the world,' says she. 'Then 
it's courtesy in the Solomons,' says I. 
And d'ye knowon my faith I think Burnett'd have done itonly 
she pipes upsweet and pert as you please: 'Mr. Auctioneerwill 
you kindly proceed with the sale in the customary manner? I've 
other business to attend toand I can't afford to wait all night 
on men who don't know their own minds.' And then she smiles at 
Burnettas well--you knowone of those fetching smilesand damme 
if Burnett doesn't begin singing out: 'Goin'goin'goin'--last 
bid--goin'goin' for fifty-five sovereigns--goin'goin'gone--to 
youMiss--er--what nameplease?' 
'Joan Lackland,' says she, with a smile to me; and that's how she 
bought the Martha.
Sheldon experienced a sudden thrill. The Martha!--a finer schooner 
than the Malakulaandfor that matterthe finest in the 
Solomons. She was just the thing for recruitsand she was right 
on the spot. Then he realized that for such a craft to sell at 
auction for fifty-five pounds meant that there was small chance for 
saving her. 
But how did it happen?he asked. "Weren't they rather quick in 
selling the Martha?" 
Had to. You know the reef at Poonga-Poonga. She's not worth 
tuppence on it if any kind of a sea kicks up, and it's ripe for a 
nor'wester any moment now. The crowd abandoned her completely. 
Didn't even dream of auctioning her. Morgan and Raff persuaded 
them to put her up. They're a co-operative crowd, you know, an 
organized business corporation, fore and aft, all hands and the 
cook. They held a meeting and voted to sell.
But why didn't they stand by and try to save her?
Stand by! You know Malaita. And you know Poonga-Poonga. That's 
where they cut off the Scottish Chiefs and killed all hands. There 
was nothing to do but take to the boats. The Martha missed stays 
going in, and inside five minutes she was on the reef and in 
possession. The niggers swarmed over her, and they just threw the 
crew into the boats. I talked with some of the men. They swear 
there were two hundred war canoes around her inside half an hour, 
and five thousand bushmen on the beach. Said you couldn't see 
Malaita for the smoke of the signal fires. Anyway, they cleared 
out for Tulagi.
But why didn't they fight?Sheldon asked. 
It was funny they didn't, but they got separated. You see, twothirds 
of them were in the boats, without weapons, running anchors 
and never dreaming the natives would attack. They found out their 
mistake too late. The natives had charge. That's the trouble of 
new chums on the coast. It would never have happened with you or 
me or any old-timer.
But what is Miss Lackland intending to do?Captain Auckland 
grinned. 
She's going to try to get the Martha off, I should say. Or else 
why did she pay fifty-five quid for her? And if she fails, she'll 
try to get her money back by saving the gear--spars, you know, and 
patent steering-gear, and winches, and such things. At least 
that's what I'd do if I was in her place. When I sailed, the 
little girl had chartered the Emily--'I'm going recruiting,' says 
Munster--he's the skipper and owner now. 'And how much will you 
net on the cruise?' asks she. 'Oh, fifty quid,' says he. 'Good,' 
says she; 'you bring your Emily along with me and you'll get 
seventy-five.' You know that big ship's anchor and chain piled up 
behind the coal-sheds? She was just buying that when I left. 
She's certainly a hustler, that little girl of yours.
She is my partner,Sheldon corrected. 
Well, she's a good one, that's all, and a cool one. My word! a 
white woman on Malaita, and at Poonga-Poonga of all places! Oh, I 
forgot to tell you--she palavered Burnett into lending her eight 
rifles for her men, and three cases of dynamite. You'd laugh to 
see the way she makes that Guvutu gang stand around. And to see 
them being polite and trying to give advice! Lord, Lord, man, that 
little girl's a wonder, a marvel, a--a--a catastrophe. That's what 
she is, a catastrophe. She's gone through Guvutu and Tulagi like a 
hurricane; every last swine of them in love with her--except Raff. 
He's sore over the auction, and he sprang his recruiting contract 
with Munster on her. And what does she do but thank him, and read 
it over, and point out that while Munster was pledged to deliver 
all recruits to Morgan and Raff, there was no clause in the 
document forbidding him from chartering the Emily. 
'There's your contract' says shepassing it back. 'And a very 
good contract it is. The next time you draw one upinsert a 
clause that will fit emergencies like the present one.' AndLord
Lordshe had himtoo. 
But there's the breeze, and I'm off. Good-bye, old man. Hope the 
little girl succeeds. The Martha's a whacking fine boat, and she'd 
take the place of the Jessie.
CHAPTER XVII--"YOUR" MISS LACKLAND 
The next morning Sheldon came in from the plantation to breakfast
to find the mission ketchApostleat anchorher crew swimming 
two mares and a filly ashore. Sheldon recognized the animals as 
belonging to the Resident Commissionerand he immediately wondered 
if Joan had bought them. She was certainly living up to her threat 
of rattling the dry bones of the Solomonsand he was prepared for 
anything. 
Miss Lackland sent them,said Welshmerethe missionary doctor
stepping ashore and shaking hands with him. "There's also a box of 
saddles on board. And this letter from her. And the skipper of 
the Flibberty-Gibbet." 
The next momentand before he could greet himOleson stepped from 
the boat and began. 
She's stolen the Flibberty, Mr. Sheldon. Run clean away with her. 
She's a wild one. She gave me the fever. Brought it on by shock. 
And got me drunk, as well--rotten drunk.
Dr. Welshmere laughed heartily. 
Nevertheless, she is not an unmitigated evil, your Miss Lackland. 
She's sworn three men off their drink, or, to the same purpose, 
shut off their whisky. You know them--Brahms, Curtis, and Fowler. 
She shipped them on the Flibberty-Gibbet along with her.
She's the skipper of the Flibberty now,Oleson broke in. "And 
she'll wreck her as sure as God didn't make the Solomons." 
Dr. Welshmere tried to look shockedbut laughed again. 
She has quite a way with her,he said. "I tried to back out of 
bringing the horses over. Said I couldn't charge freightthat the 
Apostle was under a yacht licensethat I was going around by Savo 
and the upper end of Guadalcanar. But it was no use. 'Bother the 
charge' said she. 'You take the horses like a good manand when 
I float the Martha I'll return the service some day.'" 
And 'bother your orders,' said she to me,Oleson cried. "'I'm 
your boss now' said she'and you take your orders from me.' 
'Look at that load of ivory nuts' I said. 'Bother them' said 
she; 'I'm playin' for something bigger than ivory nuts. We'll dump 
them overside as soon as we get under way.'" 
Sheldon put his hands to his ears. 
I don't know what has happened, and you are trying to tell me the 
tale backwards. Come up to the house and get in the shade and 
begin at the beginning.
What I want to know,Oleson beganwhen they were seatedis IS 
she your partner or ain't she? That's what I want to know.
She is,Sheldon assured him. 
Well, who'd have believed it!Oleson glanced appealingly at Dr. 
Welshmereand back again at Sheldon. "I've seen a few unlikely 
things in these Solomons--rats two feet longbutterflies the 
Commissioner hunts with a shot-gunear-ornaments that would shame 
the deviland head-hunting devils that make the devil look like an 
angel. I've seen them and got used to thembut this young woman 
of yours--" 
Miss Lackland is my partner and part-owner of Berande,Sheldon 
interrupted. 
So she said,the irate skipper dashed on. "But she had no papers 
to show for it. How was I to know? And then there was that load 
of ivory nuts-eight tons of them." 
For heaven's sake begin at the--Sheldon tried to interrupt. 
And then she's hired them drunken loafers, three of the worst 
scoundrels that ever disgraced the Solomons--fifteen quid a month 
each--what d'ye think of that? And sailed away with them, too! 
Phew!--You might give me a drink. The missionary won't mind. I've 
been on his teetotal hooker four days now, and I'm perishing.
Dr. Welshmere nodded in reply to Sheldon's look of inquiryand 
Viaburi was dispatched for the whisky and siphons. 
It is evident, Captain Oleson,Sheldon remarked to that refreshed 
marinerthat Miss Lackland has run away with your boat. Now 
please give a plain statement of what occurred.
Right O; here goes. I'd just come in on the Flibberty. She was 
on board before I dropped the hook--in that whale-boat of hers with 
her gang of Tahiti heathens--that big Adamu Adam and the rest. 
'Don't drop the anchor, Captain Oleson,' she sang out. 'I want you 
to get under way for Poonga-Poonga.' I looked to see if she'd been 
drinking. What was I to think? I was rounding up at the time, 
alongside the shoal--a ticklish place--headsails running down and 
losing way, so I says, 'Excuse me, Miss Lackland,' and yells 
for'ard, 'Let go!' 
'You might have listened to me and saved yourself trouble' says 
sheclimbing over the rail and squinting along for'ard and seeing 
the first shackle flip out and stop. 'There's fifteen fathom' 
says she; 'you may as well turn your men to and heave up.' 
And then we had it out. I didn't believe her. I didn't think 
you'd take her on as a partner, and I told her as much and wanted 
proof. She got high and mighty, and I told her I was old enough to 
be her grandfather and that I wouldn't take gammon from a chit like 
her. And then I ordered her off the Flibberty. 'Captain Oleson,' 
she says, sweet as you please, 'I've a few minutes to spare on you, 
and I've got some good whisky over on the Emily. Come on along. 
Besides, I want your advice about this wrecking business. 
Everybody says you're a crackerjack sailor-man'--that's what she 
said, 'crackerjack.' And I went, in her whale-boat, Adamu Adam 
steering and looking as solemn as a funeral. 
On the way she told me about the Marthaand how she'd bought her
and was going to float her. She said she'd chartered the Emily
and was sailing as soon as I could get the Flibberty underway. It 
struck me that her gammon was reasonable enoughand I agreed to 
pull out for Berande right Oand get your orders to go along to 
Poonga-Poonga. But she said there wasn't a second to be lost by 
any such foolishnessand that I was to sail direct for Poonga-
Poongaand that if I couldn't take her word that she was your 
partnershe'd get along without me and the Flibberty. And right 
there's where she fooled me. 
Down in the Emily's cabin was them three soaks--you know them--
Fowler and Curtis and that Brahms chap. 'Have a drink,' says she. 
I thought they looked surprised when she unlocked the whisky locker 
and sent a nigger for the glasses and water-monkey. But she must 
have tipped them off unbeknownst to me, and they knew just what to 
do. 'Excuse me,' she says, 'I'm going on deck a minute.' Now that 
minute was half an hour. I hadn't had a drink in ten days. I'm an 
old man and the fever has weakened me. Then I took it on an empty 
stomach, too, and there was them three soaks setting me an example, 
they arguing for me to take the Flibberty to Poonga-Poonga, an' me 
pointing out my duty to the contrary. The trouble was, all the 
arguments were pointed with drinks, and me not being a drinking 
man, so to say, and weak from fever . . . 
Wellanywayat the end of the half-hour down she came again and 
took a good squint at me. 'That'll do nicely' I remember her 
saying; and with that she took the whisky bottles and hove them 
overside through the companionway. 'That's the lastshe said to 
the three soaks'till the Martha floats and you're back in Guvutu. 
It'll be a long time between drinks.' And then she laughed. 
She looked at me and said--not to me, mind you, but to the soaks: 
'It's time this worthy man went ashore'--me! worthy man! 'Fowler,' 
she said--you know, just like a straight order, and she didn't 
MISTER him--it was plain Fowler--'Fowler,' she said, 'just tell 
Adamu Adam to man the whale-boat, and while he's taking Captain 
Oleson ashore have your boat put me on the Flibberty. The three of 
you sail with me, so pack your dunnage. And the one of you that 
shows up best will take the mate's billet. Captain Oleson doesn't 
carry a mate, you know.' 
I don't remember much after that. All hands got me over the side
and it seems to me I went to sleepsitting in the stern-sheets and 
watching that Adamu steer. Then I saw the Flibberty's mainsail 
hoistingand heard the clank of her chain coming inand I woke 
up. 'Hereput me on the Flibberty' I said to Adamu. 'I put you 
on the beach' said he. 'Missie Lackalanna say beach plenty good 
for you.' WellI let out a yell and reached for the steeringsweep. 
I was doing my best by my ownersyou see. Only that Adamu 
gives me a shove down on the bottom-boardsputs one foot on me to 
hold me downand goes on steering. And that's all. The shock of 
the whole thing brought on fever. And now I've come to find out 
whether I'm skipper of the Flibbertyor that chit of yours with 
her piratingheathen boat's-crew." 
Never mind, skipper. You can take a vacation on pay.Sheldon 
spoke with more assurance than he felt. "If Miss Lacklandwho is 
my partnerhas seen fit to take charge of the Flibberty-Gibbet
whyit is all right. As you will agreethere was no time to be 
lost if the Martha was to be got off. It is a bad reefand any 
considerable sea would knock her bottom out. You settle down here
skipperand rest up and get the fever out of your bones. When the 
Flibberty-Gibbet comes backyou'll take charge againof course." 
After Dr. Welshmere and the Apostle departed and Captain Oleson had 
turned in for a sleep in a veranda hammockSheldon opened Joan's 
letter. 
DEAR MR. SHELDON--Please forgive me for stealing the Flibberty-
Gibbet. I simply had to. The Martha means everything to us. 
Think of itonly fifty-five pounds for hertwo hundred and 
seventy-five dollars. If I don't save herI know I shall be able 
to pay all expenses out of her gearwhich the natives will not 
have carried off. And if I do save herit is the haul of a lifetime. 
And if I don't save herI'll fill the Emily and the 
Flibberty-Gibbet with recruits. Recruits are needed right now on 
Berande more than anything else. 
And pleaseplease don't be angry with me. You said I shouldn't go 
recruiting on the Flibbertyand I won't. I'll go on the Emily. 
I bought two cows this afternoon. That trader at Nogi died of 
feverand I bought them from his partnerSam Willis his name is
who agrees to deliver them--most likely by the Minerva next time 
she is down that way. Berande has been long enough on tinned milk. 
And Dr. Welshmere has agreed to get me some orange and lime trees 
from the mission station at Ulava. He will deliver them the next 
trip of the Apostle. If the Sydney steamer arrives before I get 
backplant the sweet corn she will bring between the young trees 
on the high bank of the Balesuna. The current is eating in against 
that bankand you should do something to save it. 
I have ordered some fig-trees and loquatstoofrom Sydney. Dr. 
Welshmere will bring some mango-seeds. They are big trees and 
require plenty of room. 
The Martha is registered 110 tons. She is the biggest schooner in 
the Solomonsand the best. I saw a little of her lines and guess 
the rest. She will sail like a witch. If she hasn't filled with 
waterher engine will be all right. The reason she went ashore 
was because it was not working. The engineer had disconnected the 
feed-pipes to clean out the rust. Poor businessunless at anchor 
or with plenty of sea room. 
Plant all the trees in the compoundeven if you have to clean out 
the palms later on. 
And don't plant the sweet corn all at once. Let a few days elapse 
between plantings. 
JOAN LACKLAND. 
He fingered the letterlingering over it and scrutinizing the 
writing in a way that was not his wont. How characteristicwas 
his thoughtas he studied the boyish scrawl--clear to read
painfullyclearbut none the less boyish. The clearness of it 
reminded him of her faceof her cleanly stencilled browsher 
straightly chiselled nosethe very clearness of the gaze of her 
eyesthe firmly yet delicately moulded lipsand the throat
neither fragile nor robustbut--but just righthe concludedan 
adequate and beautiful pillar for so shapely a burden. 
He looked long at the name. Joan Lackland--just an assemblage of 
lettersof commonplace lettersbut an assemblage that generated a 
subtle and heady magic. It crept into his brain and twined and 
twisted his mental processes until all that constituted him at that 
moment went out in love to that scrawled signature. A few 
commonplace letters--yet they caused him to know in himself a lack 
that sweetly hurt and that expressed itself in vague spiritual 
outpourings and delicious yearnings. Joan Lackland! Each time he 
looked at it there arose visions of her in a myriad moods and 
guises--coming in out of the flying smother of the gale that had 
wrecked her schooner; launching a whale-boat to go a-fishing; 
running dripping from the seawith streaming hair and clinging 
garmentsto the fresh-water shower; frightening four-score 
cannibals with an empty chlorodyne bottle; teaching Ornfiri how to 
make bread; hanging her Stetson hat and revolver-belt on the hook 
in the living-room; talking gravely about winning to hearth and 
saddle of her ownor juvenilely rattling on about romance and 
adventurebright-eyedher face flushed and eager with enthusiasm. 
Joan Lackland! He mused over the cryptic wonder of it till the 
secrets of love were made clear and he felt a keen sympathy for 
lovers who carved their names on trees or wrote them on the beachsands 
of the sea. 
Then he came back to realityand his face hardened. Even then she 
was on the wild coast of Malaitaand at Poonga-Poongaof all 
villainous and dangerous portions the worstpeopled with a teeming 
population of head-huntersrobbersand murderers. For the 
instant he entertained the rash thought of calling his boat's-crew 
and starting immediately in a whale-boat for Poonga-Poonga. But 
the next instant the idea was dismissed. What could he do if he 
did go? Firstshe would resent it. Nextshe would laugh at him 
and call him a silly; and after all he would count for only one 
rifle moreand she had many rifles with her. Three things only 
could he do if he went. He could command her to return; he could 
take the Flibberty-Gibbet away from her; he could dissolve their 
partnership;--any and all of which he knew would be foolish and 
futileand he could hear her explain in terse set terms that she 
was legally of age and that nobody could say come or go to her. 
Nohis pride would never permit him to start for Poonga-Poonga
though his heart whispered that nothing could be more welcome than 
a message from her asking him to come and lend a hand. Her very 
words--"lend a hand"; and in his fancyhe could see and hear her 
saying them. 
There was much in her wilful conduct that caused him to wince in 
the heart of him. He was appalled by the thought of her shoulder 
to shoulder with the drunken rabble of traders and beachcombers at 
Guvutu. It was bad enough for a cleanfastidious man; but for a 
young womana girl at thatit was awful. The theft of the 
Flibberty-Gibbet was merely amusingthough the means by which the 
theft had been effected gave him hurt. Yet he found consolation in 
the fact that the task of making Oleson drunk had been turned over 
to the three scoundrels. And nextand swiftlycame the vision of 
heralone with those same three scoundrelson the Emilysailing 
out to sea from Guvutu in the twilight with darkness coming on. 
Then came visions of Adamu Adam and Noa Noah and all her brawny 
Tahitian followingand his anxiety faded awaybeing replaced by 
irritation that she should have been capable of such wildness of 
conduct. 
And the irritation was still on him as he got up and went inside to 
stare at the hook on the wall and to wish that her Stetson hat and 
revolver-belt were hanging from it. 
CHAPTER XVIII--MAKING THE BOOKS COME TRUE 
Several quiet weeks slipped by. Berandeafter such an unusual run 
of visiting vesselsdrifted back into her old solitude. Sheldon 
went on with the daily roundclearing bushplanting cocoanuts
smoking coprabuilding bridgesand riding about his work on the 
horses Joan had bought. News of her he had none. Recruiting 
vessels on Malaita left the Poonga-Poonga coast severely alone; and 
the Clansmana Samoan recruiterdropping anchor one sunset for 
billiards and gossipreported rumours amongst the Sio natives that 
there had been fighting at Poonga-Poonga. As this news would have 
had to travel right across the big islandlittle dependence was to 
be placed on it. 
The steamer from Sydneythe Kammambobroke the quietude of 
Berande for an hourwhile landing mailsuppliesand the trees 
and seeds Joan had ordered. The Minervabound for Cape Marsh
brought the two cows from Nogi. And the Apostlehurrying back to 
Tulagi to connect with the Sydney steamersent a boat ashore with 
the orange and lime trees from Ulava. And these several weeks 
marked a period of perfect weather. There were days on end when 
sleek calms ruled the breathless seaand days when vagrant wisps 
of air fanned for several hours from one direction or another. The 
land-breezes at night alone proved regularand it was at night 
that the occasional cutters and ketches slipped bytoo eager to 
take advantage of the light winds to drop anchor for an hour. 
Then came the long-expected nor'wester. For eight days it raged
lulling at times to short durations of calmthen shifting a point 
or two and raging with renewed violence. Sheldon kept a 
precautionary eye on the buildingswhile the Balesunain flood
so savagely attacked the high bank Joan had warned him aboutthat 
he told off all the gangs to battle with the river. 
It was in the good weather that followedthat he left the blacks 
at workone morningand with a shot-gun across his pommel rode 
off after pigeons. Two hours laterone of the house-boys
breathless and scratched ran him down with the news that the 
Marthathe Flibberty-Gibbetand the Emily were heading in for the 
anchorage. 
Coming into the compound from the rearSheldon could see nothing 
until he rode around the corner of the bungalow. Then he saw 
everything at once--firsta glimpse at the seawhere the Martha 
floated huge alongside the cutter and the ketch which had rescued 
her; andnextthe ground in front of the veranda stepswhere a 
great crowd of fresh-caught cannibals stood at attention. From the 
fact that each was attired in a newsnow-white lava-lavaSheldon 
knew that they were recruits. Part way up the stepsone of them 
was just backing down into the crowdwhile anothercalled out by 
namewas coming up. It was Joan's voice that had called himand 
Sheldon reined in his horse and watched. She sat at the head of 
the stepsbehind a tablebetween Munster and his white matethe 
three of them checking long listsJoan asking the questions and 
writing the answers in the bigred-coveredBerande labourjournal. 
What name?she demanded of the black man on the steps. 
Tagari,came the answeraccompanied by a grin and a rolling of 
curious eyes; for it was the first white-man's house the black had 
ever seen. 
What place b'long you?
Bangoora.
No one had noticed Sheldonand he continued to sit his horse and 
watch. There was a discrepancy between the answer and the record 
in the recruiting booksand a consequent discussionuntil Munster 
solved the difficulty. 
Bangoora?he said. "That's the little beach at the head of the 
bay out of Latta. He's down as a Latta-man--seethere it is
'TagariLatta.'" 
What place you go you finish along white marster?Joan asked. 
Bangoora,the man replied; and Joan wrote it down. 
Ogu!Joan called. 
The black stepped downand another mounted to take his place. But 
Tagarijust before he reached the bottom stepcaught sight of 
Sheldon. It was the first horse the fellow had ever seenand he 
let out a frightened screech and dashed madly up the steps. At the 
same moment the great mass of blacks surged away panic-stricken 
from Sheldon's vicinity. The grinning house-boys shouted 
encouragement and explanationand the stampede was checkedthe 
new-caught head-hunters huddling closely together and staring 
dubiously at the fearful monster. 
Hello!Joan called out. "What do you mean by frightening all my 
boys? Come on up." 
What do you think of them?she askedwhen they had shaken hands. 
And what do you think of her?--with a wave of the hand toward the 
Martha. "I thought you'd deserted the plantationand that I might 
as well go ahead and get the men into barracks. Aren't they 
beauties? Do you see that one with the split nose? He's the only 
man who doesn't hail from the Poonga-Poonga coast; and they said 
the Poonga-Poonga natives wouldn't recruit. Just look at them and 
congratulate me. There are no kiddies and half-grown youths among 
them. They're menevery last one of them. I have such a long 
story I don't know where to beginand I won't begin anyway till 
we're through with this and until you have told me that you are not 
angry with me." 
Ogu--what place b'long you?she went on with her catechism. 
But Ogu was a bushmanlacking knowledge of the almost universal 
beche-de-mer Englishand half a dozen of his fellows wrangled to 
explain. 
There are only two or three more,Joan said to Sheldonand then 
we're done. But you haven't told me that you are not angry.
Sheldon looked into her clear eyes as she favoured him with a 
directuntroubled gaze that threatenedhe knew from experience
to turn teasingly defiant on an instant's notice. And as he looked 
at her it came to him that he had never half-anticipated the 
gladness her return would bring to him. 
I was angry,he said deliberately. "I am still angryvery 
angry--" he noted the glint of defiance in her eyes and thrilled-"
but I forgaveand I now forgive all over again. Though I still 
insist--" 
That I should have a guardian,she interrupted. "But that day 
will never come. Thank goodness I'm of legal age and able to 
transact business in my own right. And speaking of businesshow 
do you like my forceful American methods?" 
Mr. Raff, from what I hear, doesn't take kindly to them,he 
temporizedand you've certainly set the dry bones rattling for 
many a day. But what I want to know is if other American women are 
as successful in business ventures?
Luck, 'most all luck,she disclaimed modestlythough her eyes 
lighted with sudden pleasure; and he knew her boy's vanity had been 
touched by his trifle of tempered praise. 
Luck be blowed!broke out the long mateSparrowhawkhis face 
shining with admiration. "It was hard workthat's what it was. 
We earned our pay. She worked us till we dropped. And we were 
down with fever half the time. So was shefor that matteronly 
she wouldn't stay downand she wouldn't let us stay down. My 
wordshe's a slave-driver--'Just one more heaveMr. Sparrowhawk
and then you can go to bed for a week'--she to meand me 
staggerin' 'round like a dead manwith bilious-green lights 
flashing inside my headan' my head just bustin'. I was all in
but I gave that heave right O--and then it was'Another heave now
Mr. Sparrowhawkjust another heave.' An' the Lord lummethe way 
she made love to old Kina-Kina!" 
He shook his head reproachfullywhile the laughter died down in 
his throat to long-drawn chuckles. 
He was older than Telepasse and dirtier,she assured Sheldon
and I am sure much wickeder. But this isn't work. Let us get 
through with these lists.
She turned to the waiting black on the steps
Ogu, you finish along big marster belong white man, you go Not-
Not.--Here you, Tangari, you speak 'm along that fella Ogu. He 
finish he walk about Not-Not. Have you got that, Mr. Munster?
But you've broken the recruiting laws,Sheldon saidwhen the new 
recruits had marched away to the barracks. "The licenses for the 
Flibberty and the Emily don't allow for one hundred and fifty. 
What did Burnett say?" 
He passed them, all of them,she answered. "Captain Munster will 
tell you what he said--something about being blowedor words to 
that effect. Now I must run and wash up. Did the Sydney orders 
arrive?" 
Yours are in your quarters,Sheldon said. "Hurryfor breakfast 
is waiting. Let me have your hat and belt. Dopleaseallow me. 
There's only one hook for themand I know where it is." 
She gave him a quick scrutiny that was almost woman-likethen 
sighed with relief as she unbuckled the heavy belt and passed it to 
him. 
I doubt if I ever want to see another revolver,she complained. 
That one has worn a hole in me, I'm sure. I never dreamed I could 
get so weary of one.
Sheldon watched her to the foot of the stepswhere she turned and 
called back
My! I can't tell you how good it is to be home again.
And as his gaze continued to follow her across the compound to the 
tiny grass housethe realization came to him crushingly that 
Berande and that little grass house was the only place in the world 
she could call "home." 
And Burnett said, 'Well, I'll be damned--I beg your pardon, Miss 
Lackland, but you have wantonly broken the recruiting laws and you 
know it,'Captain Munster narratedas they sat over their whisky
waiting for Joan to come back. "And says she to him'Mr. Burnett
can you show me any law against taking the passengers off a vessel 
that's on a reef?' 'That is not the point' says he. 'It's the 
verypreciseparticular point' says she and you bear it in mind 
and go ahead and pass my recruits. You can report me to the Lord 
High Commissioner if you wantbut I have three vessels here 
waiting on your convenienceand if you delay them much longer 
there'll be another report go in to the Lord High Commissioner.' 
'I'll hold you responsible, Captain Munster,' says he to me, mad 
enough to eat scrap-iron. 'No, you won't,' says she; 'I'm the 
charterer of the Emily, and Captain Munster has acted under my 
orders.' 
What could Burnett do? He passed the whole hundred and fifty
though the Emily was only licensed for fortyand the Flibberty-
Gibbet for thirty-five." 
But I don't understand,Sheldon said. 
This is the way she worked it. When the Martha was floated, we 
had to beach her right away at the head of the bay, and whilst 
repairs were going on, a new rudder being made, sails bent, gear 
recovered from the niggers, and so forth, Miss Lackland borrows 
Sparrowhawk to run the Flibberty along with Curtis, lends me Brahms 
to take Sparrowhawk's place, and starts both craft off recruiting. 
My word, the niggers came easy. It was virgin ground. Since the 
Scottish Chiefs, no recruiter had ever even tried to work the 
coast; and we'd already put the fear of God into the niggers' 
hearts till the whole coast was quiet as lambs. When we filled up, 
we came back to see how the Martha was progressing.
And thinking we was going home with our recruits,Sparrowhawk 
slipped in. "Lord lummethat Miss Lackland ain't never satisfied. 
'I'll take 'em on the Martha' says she'and you can go back and 
fill up again.'" 
But I told her it couldn't be done,Munster went on. "I told her 
the Martha hadn't a license for recruiting. 'Oh' she said'it 
can't be doneeh?' and she stood and thought a few minutes." 
And I'd seen her think before,cried Sparrowhawkand I knew at 
wunst that the thing was as good as done.
Munster lighted his cigarette and resumed. 
'You see that spit,' she says to me, 'with the little ripple 
breaking around it? There's a current sets right across it and on 
it. And you see them bafflin' little cat's-paws? It's good 
weather and a falling tide. You just start to beat out, the two of 
you, and all you have to do is miss stays in the same baffling puff 
and the current will set you nicely aground.'
'That little wash of sea won't more than start a sheet or two of 
copper,' says she, when Munster kicked,Sparrowhawk explained. 
Oh, she's no green un, that girl.
'Then I'll rescue your recruits and sail away--simple, ain't it?' 
says she,Munster continued. "'You hang up one tide' says she; 
'the next is the big high water. Then you kedge off and go after 
more recruits. There's no law against recruiting when you're 
empty.' 'But there is against starving 'em' I said; 'you know 
yourself there ain't any kai-kai to speak of aboard of usand 
there ain't a crumb on the Martha.'" 
We'd all been pretty well on native kai-kai, as it was,said 
Sparrowhawk. 
'Don't let the kai-kai worry you, Captain Munster,' says she; 'if 
I can find grub for eighty-four mouths on the Martha, the two of 
you can do as much by your two vessels. Now go ahead and get 
aground before a steady breeze comes up and spoils the manoeuvre. 
I'll send my boats the moment you strike. And now, good-day, 
gentlemen.'
And we went and did it,Sparrowhawk said solemnlyand then 
emitted a series of chuckling noises. "We laid overstarboard 
tackand I pinched the Emily against the spit. 'Go about' 
Captain Munster yells at me; 'go aboutor you'll have me aground!' 
He yelled other thingsmuch worse. But I didn't mind. I missed 
stayspretty as you pleaseand the Flibberty drifted down on him 
and fouled himand we went ashore together in as nice a mess as 
you ever want to see. Miss Lackland transferred the recruitsand 
the trick was done." 
But where was she during the nor'wester?Sheldon asked. 
At Langa-Langa. Ran up there as it was coming on, and laid there 
the whole week and traded for grub with the niggers. When we got 
to Tulagi, there she was waiting for us and scrapping with Burnett. 
I tell you, Mr. Sheldon, she's a wonder, that girl, a perfect 
wonder.
Munster refilled his glassand while Sheldon glanced across at 
Joan's houseanxious for her comingSparrowhawk took up the tale. 
Gritty! She's the grittiest thing, man or woman, that ever blew 
into the Solomons. You should have seen Poonga-Poonga the morning 
we arrived--Sniders popping on the beach and in the mangroves, wardrums 
booming in the bush, and signal-smokes raising everywhere. 
'It's all up,' says Captain Munster.
Yes, that's what I said,declared that mariner. 
Of course it was all up. You could see it with half an eye and 
hear it with one ear.
'Up your granny,' she says to him,Sparrowhawk went on. "'Why
we haven't arrived yetmuch less got started. Wait till the 
anchor's down before you get afraid.'" 
That's what she said to me,Munster proclaimed. "And of course 
it made me mad so that I didn't care what happened. We tried to 
send a boat ashore for a pow-wowbut it was fired upon. And every 
once and a while some nigger'd take a long shot at us out of the 
mangroves." 
They was only a quarter of a mile off,Sparrowhawk explained
and it was damned nasty. 'Don't shoot unless they try to board,' 
was Miss Lackland's orders; but the dirty niggers wouldn't board. 
They just lay off in the bush and plugged away. That night we held 
a council of war in the Flibberty's cabin. 'What we want,' says 
Miss Lackland, 'is a hostage.'
'That's what they do in books,' I said, thinking to laugh her away 
from her folly,Munster interrupted. "'True' says she'and have 
you never seen the books come true?' I shook my head. 'Then 
you're not too old to learn' says she. 'I'll tell you one thing 
right now' says I'and that is I'll be blowed if you catch me 
ashore in the night-time stealing niggers in a place like this.'" 
You didn't say blowed,Sparrowhawk corrected. "You said you'd be 
damned." 
That's what I did, and I meant it, too.
'Nobody asked you to go ashore,' says she, quick as lightning,
Sparrowhawk grinned. "And she said more. She said'And if I 
catch you going ashore without orders there'll be trouble-understand
Captain Munster?'" 
Who in hell's telling this, you or me?the skipper demanded 
wrathfully. 
Well, she did, didn't she?insisted the mate. 
Yes, she did, if you want to make so sure of it. And while you're 
about it, you might as well repeat what she said to you when you 
said you wouldn't recruit on the Poonga-Poonga coast for twice your 
screw.
Sparrowhawk's sun-reddened face flamed redderthough he tried to 
pass the situation off by divers laughings and chucklings and facetwistings. 
Go on, go on,Sheldon urged; and Munster resumed the narrative. 
'What we need,' says she, 'is the strong hand. It's the only way 
to handle them; and we've got to take hold firm right at the 
beginning. I'm going ashore to-night to fetch Kina-Kina himself on 
board, and I'm not asking who's game to go for I've got every man's 
work arranged with me for him. I'm taking my sailors with me, and 
one white man.' 'Of course, I'm that white man,' I said; for by 
that time I was mad enough to go to hell and back again. 'Of 
course you're not,' says she. 'You'll have charge of the covering 
boat. Curtis stands by the landing boat. Fowler goes with me. 
Brahms takes charge of the Flibberty, and Sparrowhawk of the Emily. 
And we start at one o'clock.' 
My wordit was a tough job lying there in the covering boat. I 
never thought doing nothing could be such hard work. We stopped 
about fifty fathoms offand watched the other boat go in. It was 
so dark under the mangroves we couldn't see a thing of it. D'ye 
know that littlemonkey-looking niggerSheldonon the Flibberty-
the cookI mean? Wellhe was cabin-boy twenty years ago on the 
Scottish Chiefsand after she was cut off he was a slave there at 
Poonga-Poonga. And Miss Lackland had discovered the fact. So he 
was the guide. She gave him half a case of tobacco for that 
night's work--" 
And scared him fit to die before she could get him to come along,
Sparrowhawk observed. 
Well, I never saw anything so black as the mangroves. I stared at 
them till my eyes were ready to burst. And then I'd look at the 
stars, and listen to the surf sighing along the reef. And there 
was a dog that barked. Remember that dog, Sparrowhawk? The brute 
nearly gave me heart-failure when he first began. After a while he 
stopped--wasn't barking at the landing party at all; and then the 
silence was harder than ever, and the mangroves grew blacker, and 
it was all I could do to keep from calling out to Curtis in there 
in the landing boat, just to make sure that I wasn't the only white 
man left alive. 
Of course there was a row. It had to comeand I knew it; but it 
startled me just the same. I never heard such screeching and 
yelling in my life. The niggers must have just dived for the bush 
without looking to see what was upwhile her Tahitians let loose
shooting in the air and yelling to hurry 'em on. And thenjust as 
suddencame the silence again--all except for some small kiddie 
that had got dropped in the stampede and that kept crying in the 
bush for its mother. 
And then I heard them coming through the mangroves, and an oar 
strike on a gunwale, and Miss Lackland laugh, and I knew everything 
was all right. We pulled on board without a shot being fired. 
And, by God! she had made the books come true, for there was old 
Kina-Kina himself being hoisted over the rail, shivering and 
chattering like an ape. The rest was easy. Kina-Kina's word was 
law, and he was scared to death. And we kept him on board issuing 
proclamations all the time we were in Poonga-Poonga. 
It was a good movetooin other ways. She made Kina-Kina order 
his people to return all the gear they'd stripped from the Martha. 
And back it cameday after daysteering compassesblocks and 
tacklessailscoils of ropemedicine chestsensignssignal 
flags--everythingin factexcept the trade goods and supplies 
which had already been kai-kai'd. Of courseshe gave them a few 
sticks of tobacco to keep them in good humour." 
Sure she did,Sparrowhawk broke forth. "She gave the beggars 
five fathoms of calico for the big mainsailtwo sticks of tobacco 
for the chronometerand a sheath-knife worth elevenpence ha'penny 
for a hundred fathoms of brand new five-inch manila. She got old 
Kina-Kina with that strong hand on the go offand she kept him 
going all the time. She--here she comes now." 
It was with a shock of surprise that Sheldon greeted her 
appearance. All the timewhile the tale of happening at Poonga-
Poonga had been going onhe had pictured her as the woman he had 
always knownclad roughlyskirt made out of window-curtain stuff
an undersized man's shirt for a blousestraw sandals for foot 
coveringwith the Stetson hat and the eternal revolver completing 
her costume. The ready-made clothes from Sydney had transformed 
her. A simple skirt and shirt-waist of some sort of wash-goods set 
off her trim figure with a hint of elegant womanhood that was new 
to him. Brown slippers peeped out as she crossed the compoundand 
he once caught a glimpse to the ankle of brown open-work stockings. 
Somehowshe had been made many times the woman by these mere 
extraneous trappings; and in his mind these wild Arabian Nights 
adventures of hers seemed thrice as wonderful. 
As they went in to breakfast he became aware that Munster and 
Sparrowhawk had received a similar shock. All their air of 
camaraderie was dissipatedand they had become abruptly and 
immensely respectful. 
I've opened up a new field,she saidas she began pouring the 
coffee. "Old Kina-Kina will never forget meI'm sureand I can 
recruit there whenever I want. I saw Morgan at Guvutu. He's 
willing to contract for a thousand boys at forty shillings per 
head. Did I tell you that I'd taken out a recruiting license for 
the Martha? I didand the Martha can sign eighty boys every trip. 
Sheldon smiled a trifle bitterly to himself. The wonderful woman 
who had tripped across the compound in her Sydney clothes was gone
and he was listening to the boy come back again. 
CHAPTER XIX--THE LOST TOY 
Well,Joan said with a sighI've shown you hustling American 
methods that succeed and get somewhere, and here you are beginning 
your muddling again.
Five days had passedand she and Sheldon were standing on the 
veranda watching the Marthaclose-hauled on the windlaying a 
tack off shore. During those five days Joan had never once 
broached the desire of her heartthough Sheldonin this 
particular instance reading her like a bookhad watched her lead 
up to the question a score of times in the hope that he would 
himself suggest her taking charge of the Martha. She had wanted 
him to say the wordand she had steeled herself not to say it 
herself. The matter of finding a skipper had been a hard one. She 
was jealous of the Marthaand no suggested man had satisfied her. 
Oleson?she had demanded. "He does very well on the Flibberty
with me and my men to overhaul her whenever she's ready to fall to 
pieces through his slackness. But skipper of the Martha? 
Impossible!" 
Munster? Yes, he's the only man I know in the Solomons I'd care 
to see in charge. And yet, there's his record. He lost the 
Umbawa--one hundred and forty drowned. He was first officer on the 
bridge. Deliberate disobedience to instructions. No wonder they 
broke him. 
Christian Young has never had any experience with large boats. 
Besideswe can't afford to pay him what he's clearing on the 
Minerva. Sparrowhawk is a good man--to take orders. He has no 
initiative. He's an able sailorbut he can't command. I tell you 
I was nervous all the time he had charge of the Flibberty at 
Poonga-Poonga when I had to stay by the Martha." 
And so it had gone. No name proposed was satisfactoryand
moreoverSheldon had been surprised by the accuracy of her 
judgments. A dozen times she almost drove him to the statement 
that from the showing she made of Solomon Islands sailorsshe was 
the only person fitted to command the Martha. But each time he 
restrained himselfwhile her pride prevented her from making the 
suggestion. 
Good whale-boat sailors do not necessarily make good schoonerhandlers,
she replied to one of his arguments. "Besidesthe 
captain of a boat like the Martha must have a large mindsee 
things in a large way; he must have capacity and enterprise." 
But with your Tahitians on board--Sheldon had begun another 
argument. 
There won't be any Tahitians on board,she had returned promptly. 
My men stay with me. I never know when I may need them. When I 
sail, they sail; when I remain ashore, they remain ashore. I'll 
find plenty for them to do right here on the plantation. You've 
seen them clearing bush, each of them worth half a dozen of your 
cannibals.
So it was that Joan stood beside Sheldon and sighed as she watched 
the Martha beating out to seaold Kinrossbrought over from Savo
in command. 
Kinross is an old fossil,she saidwith a touch of bitterness in 
her voice. "Ohhe'll never wreck her through rashnessrest 
assured of that; but he's timid to childishnessand timid skippers 
lose just as many vessels as rash ones. Some dayKinross will 
lose the Martha because there'll be only one chance and he'll be 
afraid to take it. I know his sort. Afraid to take advantage of a 
proper breeze of wind that will fetch him in in twenty hourshe'll 
get caught out in the calm that follows and spend a whole week in 
getting in. The Martha will make money with himthere's no doubt 
of it; but she won't make near the money that she would under a 
competent master." 
She pausedand with heightened colour and sparkling eyes gazed 
seaward at the schooner. 
My! but she is a witch! Look at her eating up the water, and 
there's no wind to speak of. She's not got ordinary white metal 
either. It's man-of-war copper, every inch of it. I had them 
polish it with cocoanut husks when she was careened at Poonga-
Poonga. She was a seal-hunter before this gold expedition got her. 
And seal-hunters had to sail. They've run away from second class 
Russian cruisers more than once up there off Siberia. 
Honestlyif I'd dreamed of the chance waiting for me at Guvutu 
when I bought her for less than three hundred dollarsI'd never 
have gone partners with you. And in that case I'd be sailing her 
right now. 
The justice of her contention came abruptly home to Sheldon. What 
she had done she would have done just the same if she had not been 
his partner. And in the saving of the Martha he had played no 
part. Single-handedunadvisedin the teeth of the laughter of 
Guvutu and of the competition of men like Morgan and Raffshe had 
gone into the adventure and brought it through to success. 
You make me feel like a big man who has robbed a small child of a 
lolly,he said with sudden contrition. 
And the small child is crying for it.She looked at himand he 
noted that her lip was slightly trembling and that her eyes were 
moist. It was the boy all overhe thought; the boy crying for the 
wee bit boat with which to play. And yet it was a womantoo. 
What a maze of contradiction she was! And he wonderedhad she 
been all woman and no boyif he would have loved her in just the 
same way. Then it rushed in upon his consciousness that he really 
loved her for what she wasfor all the boy in her and all the rest 
of her--for the total of her that would have been a different total 
in direct proportion to any differing of the parts of her. 
But the small child won't cry any more for it,she was saying. 
This is the last sob. Some day, if Kinross doesn't lose her, 
you'll turn her over to your partner, I know. And I won't nag you 
any more. Only I do hope you know how I feel. It isn't as if I'd 
merely bought the Martha, or merely built her. I saved her. I 
took her off the reef. I saved her from the grave of the sea when 
fifty-five pounds was considered a big risk. She is mine, 
peculiarly mine. Without me she wouldn't exist. That big 
nor'wester would have finished her the first three hours it blew. 
And then I've sailed her, too; and she is a witch, a perfect witch. 
Why, do you know, she'll steer by the wind with half a spoke, give 
and take. And going about! Well, you don't have to baby her, 
starting head-sheets, flattening mainsail, and gentling her with 
the wheel. Put your wheel down, and around she comes, like a colt 
with the bit in its teeth. And you can back her like a steamer. I 
did it at Langa-Langa, between that shoal patch and the shore-reef. 
It was wonderful. 
But you don't love boats like I doand I know you think I'm 
making a fool of myself. But some day I'm going to sail the Martha 
again. I know it. I know it." 
In replyand quite without premeditationhis hand went out to 
herscovering it as it lay on the railing. But he knewbeyond 
the shadow of a doubtthat it was the boy that returned the 
pressure he gavethe boy sorrowing over the lost toy. The thought 
chilled him. Never had he been actually nearer to herand never 
had she been more convincingly remote. She was certainly not 
acutely aware that his hand was touching hers. In her grief at the 
departure of the Martha it wasto heranybody's hand--at the 
besta friend's hand. 
He withdrew his hand and walked perturbedly away. 
Why hasn't he got that big fisherman's staysail on her?she 
demanded irritably. "It would make the old girl just walk along in 
this breeze. I know the sort old Kinross is. He's the skipper 
that lies three days under double-reefed topsails waiting for a 
gale that doesn't come. Safe? Ohyeshe's safe--dangerously 
safe." 
Sheldon retraced his steps. 
Never mind,he said. "You can go sailing on the Martha any time 
you please--recruiting on Malaita if you want to." 
It was a great concession he was makingand he felt that he did it 
against his better judgment. Her reception of it was a surprise to 
him. 
With old Kinross in command?she queried. "Nothank you. He'd 
drive me to suicide. I couldn't stand his handling of her. It 
would give me nervous prostration. I'll never step on the Martha 
againunless it is to take charge of her. I'm a sailorlike my 
fatherand he could never bear to see a vessel mishandled. Did 
you see the way Kinross got under way? It was disgraceful. And 
the noise he made about it! Old Noah did better with the Ark." 
But we manage to get somewhere just the same,he smiled. 
So did Noah.
That was the main thing.
For an antediluvian.
She took another lingering look at the Marthathen turned to 
Sheldon. 
You are a slovenly lot down here when it comes to boats--most of 
you are, any way. Christian Young is all right though, Munster has 
a slap-dash style about him, and they do say old Nielsen was a 
crackerjack. But with the rest I've seen, there's no dash, no go, 
no cleverness, no real sailor's pride. It's all hum-drum, and 
podgy, and slow-going, any going so long as you get there heaven 
knows when. But some day I'll show you how the Martha should be 
handled. I'll break out anchor and get under way in a speed and 
style that will make your head hum; and I'll bring her alongside 
the wharf at Guvutu without dropping anchor and running a line.
She came to a breathless pauseand then broke into laughter
directedhe could seeagainst herself. 
Old Kinross is setting that fisherman's staysail,he remarked 
quietly. 
No!she cried incredulouslyswiftly lookingthen running for 
the telescope. 
She regarded the manoeuvre steadily through the glassand Sheldon
watching her facecould see that the skipper was not making a 
success of it. 
She finally lowered the glass with a groan. 
He's made a mess of it,she saidand now he's trying it over 
again. And a man like that is put in charge of a fairy like the 
Martha! Well, it's a good argument against marriage, that's all. 
No, I won't look any more. Come on in and play a steady, 
conservative game of billiards with me. And after that I'm going 
to saddle up and go after pigeons. Will you come along?
An hour laterjust as they were riding out of the compoundJoan 
turned in the saddle for a last look at the Marthaa distant speck 
well over toward the Florida coast. 
Won't Tudor be surprised when he finds we own the Martha?she 
laughed. "Think of it! If he doesn't strike pay-dirt he'll have 
to buy a steamer-passage to get away from the Solomons." 
Still laughing gailyshe rode through the gate. But suddenly her 
laughter broke flatly and she reined in the mare. Sheldon glanced 
at her sharplyand noted her face mottlingeven as he lookedand 
turning orange and green. 
It's the fever,she said. "I'll have to turn back." 
By the time they were in the compound she was shivering and 
shakingand he had to help her from her horse. 
Funny, isn't it?she said with chattering teeth. "Like 
seasickness--not seriousbut horribly miserable while it lasts. 
I'm going to bed. Send Noa Noah and Viaburi to me. Tell Ornfiri 
to make hot water. I'll be out of my head in fifteen minutes. But 
I'll be all right by evening. Short and sharp is the way it takes 
me. Too bad to lose the shooting. Thank youI'm all right." 
Sheldon obeyed her instructionsrushed hot-water bottles along to 
herand then sat on the veranda vainly trying to interest himself 
in a two-months-old file of Sydney newspapers. He kept glancing up 
and across the compound to the grass house. Yeshe decidedthe 
contention of every white man in the islands was right; the 
Solomons was no place for a woman. 
He clapped his handsand Lalaperu came running. 
Here, you!he ordered; "go along barracksbring 'm black fella 
Maryplenty too muchaltogether." 
A few minutes later the dozen black women of Berande were ranged 
before him. He looked them over criticallyfinally selecting one 
that was youngcomely as such creatures wentand whose body bore 
no signs of skin-disease. 
What name, you?he demanded. "Sangui?" 
Me Mahua,was the answer. 
All right, you fella Mahua. You finish cook along boys. You stop 
along white Mary. All the time you stop along. You savvee?
Me savvee,she gruntedand obeyed his gesture to go to the grass 
house immediately. 
What name?he asked Viaburiwho had just come out of the grass 
house. 
Big fella sick,was the answer. "White fella Mary talk 'm too 
much allee time. Allee time talk 'm big fella schooner." 
Sheldon nodded. He understood. It was the loss of the Martha that 
had brought on the fever. The fever would have come sooner or 
laterhe knew; but her disappointment had precipitated it. He 
lighted a cigaretteand in the curling smoke of it caught visions 
of his English motherand wondered if she would understand how her 
son could love a woman who cried because she could not be skipper 
of a schooner in the cannibal isles. 
CHAPTER XX--A MAN-TALK 
The most patient man in the world is prone to impatience in love-and 
Sheldon was in love. He called himself an ass a score of times 
a dayand strove to contain himself by directing his mind in other 
channelsbut more than a score of times each day his thoughts 
roved back and dwelt on Joan. It was a pretty problem she 
presentedand he was continually debating with himself as to what 
was the best way to approach her. 
He was not an adept at love-making. He had had but one experience 
in the gentle art (in which he had been more wooed than wooing)
and the affair had profited him little. This was another affair
and he assured himself continually that it was a uniquely different 
and difficult affair. Not only was here a woman who was not bent 
on finding a husbandbut it was a woman who wasn't a woman at all; 
who was genuinely appalled by the thought of a husband; who joyed 
in boys' gamesand sentimentalized over such things as adventure; 
who was healthy and normal and wholesomeand who was so immature 
that a husband stood for nothing more than an encumbrance in her 
cherished scheme of existence. 
But how to approach her? He divined the fanatical love of freedom 
in herthe deep-seated antipathy for restraint of any sort. No 
man could ever put his arm around her and win her. She would 
flutter away like a frightened bird. Approach by contact--thathe 
realizedwas the one thing he must never do. His hand-clasp must 
be what it had always beenthe hand-clasp of hearty friendship and 
nothing more. Never by action must he advertise his feeling for 
her. Remained speech. But what speech? Appeal to her love? But 
she did not love him. Appeal to her brain? But it was apparently 
a boy's brain. All the deliciousness and fineness of a finely bred 
woman was hers; butfor all he could discernher mental processes 
were sexless and boyish. And yet speech it must befor a 
beginning had to be made somewheresome time; her mind must be 
made accustomed to the ideaher thoughts turned upon the matter of 
marriage. 
And so he rode overseeing about the plantationwith tightly drawn 
and puckered browspuzzling over the problemand steeling himself 
to the first attempt. A dozen ways he planned an intricate leading 
up to the first breaking of the iceand each time some link in the 
chain snapped and the talk went off on unexpected and irrelevant 
lines. And then one morningquite fortuitouslythe opportunity 
came. 
My dearest wish is the success of Berande,Joan had just said
apropos of a discussion about the cheapening of freights on copra 
to market. 
Do you mind if I tell you the dearest wish of my heart?he 
promptly returned. "I long for it. I dream about it. It is my 
dearest desire." 
He paused and looked at her with intent significance; but it was 
plain to him that she thought there was nothing more at issue than 
mutual confidences about things in general. 
Yes, go ahead,she saida trifle impatient at his delay. 
I love to think of the success of Berande,he said; "but that is 
secondary. It is subordinate to the dearest wishwhich is that 
some day you will share Berande with me in a completer way than 
that of mere business partnership. It is for yousome daywhen 
you are readyto be my wife." 
She started back from him as if she had been stung. Her face went 
white on the instantnot from maidenly embarrassmentbut from the 
anger which he could see flaming in her eyes. 
This taking for granted!--this when I am ready!she cried 
passionately. Then her voice swiftly became cold and steadyand 
she talked in the way he imagined she must have talked business 
with Morgan and Raff at Guvutu. "Listen to meMr. Sheldon. I 
like you very wellthough you are slow and a muddler; but I want 
you to understandonce and for allthat I did not come to the 
Solomons to get married. That is an affliction I could have 
accumulated at homewithout sailing ten thousand miles after it. 
I have my own way to make in the worldand I came to the Solomons 
to do it. Getting married is not making MY way in the world. It 
may do for some womenbut not for methank you. When I sit down 
to talk over the freight on copraI don't care to have proposals 
of marriage sandwiched in. Besides--besides--" 
Her voice broke for the momentand when she went on there was a 
note of appeal in it that well-nigh convicted him to himself of 
being a brute. 
Don't you see?--it spoils everything; it makes the whole situation 
impossible . . . and . . . and I so loved our partnership, and was 
proud of it. Don't you see?--I can't go on being your partner if 
you make love to me. And I was so happy.
Tears of disappointment were in her eyesand she caught a swift 
sob in her throat. 
I warned you,he said gravely. "Such unusual situations between 
men and women cannot endure. I told you so at the beginning." 
Oh, yes; it is quite clear to me what you did.She was angry 
againand the feminine appeal had disappeared. "You were very 
discreet in your warning. You took good care to warn me against 
every other man in the Solomons except yourself." 
It was a blow in the face to Sheldon. He smarted with the truth of 
itand at the same time he smarted with what he was convinced was 
the injustice of it. A gleam of triumph that flickered in her eye 
because of the hit she had made decided him. 
It is not so one-sided as you seem to think it is,he began. "I 
was doing very nicely on Berande before you came. At least I was 
not suffering indignitiessuch as being accused of cowardly 
conductas you have just accused me. Remember--please rememberI 
did not invite you to Berande. Nor did I invite you to stay on at 
Berande. It was by staying that you brought about this--to you-unpleasant 
situation. By staying you made yourself a temptation
and now you would blame me for it. I did not want you to stay. 
wasn't in love with you then. I wanted you to go to Sydney; to go 
back to Hawaii. But you insisted on staying. You virtually--" 
He paused for a softer word than the one that had risen to his 
lipsand she took it away from him. 
Forced myself on you--that's what you meant to say,she cried
the flags of battle painting her cheeks. "Go ahead. Don't mind my 
feelings." 
All right; I won't,he said decisivelyrealizing that the 
discussion was in danger of becoming a vituperativeschoolboy 
argument. "You have insisted on being considered as a man. 
Consistency would demand that you talk like a manand like a man 
listen to man-talk. And listen you shall. It is not your fault 
that this unpleasantness has arisen. I do not blame you for 
anything; remember that. And for the same reason you should not 
blame me for anything." 
He noticed her bosom heaving as she sat with clenched handsand it 
was all he could do to conquer the desire to flash his arms out and 
around her instead of going on with his coolly planned campaign. 
As it washe nearly told her that she was a most adorable boy. 
But he checked all such wayward fanciesand held himself rigidly 
down to his disquisition. 
You can't help being yourself. You can't help being a very 
desirable creature so far as I am concerned. You have made me want 
you. You didn't intend to; you didn't try to. You were so made, 
that is all. And I was so made that I was ripe to want you. But I 
can't help being myself. I can't by an effort of will cease from 
wanting you, any more than you by an effort of will can make 
yourself undesirable to me.
Oh, this desire! this want! want! want!she broke in 
rebelliously. "I am not quite a fool. I understand some things. 
And the whole thing is so foolish and absurd--and uncomfortable. I 
wish I could get away from it. I really think it would be a good 
idea for me to marry Noa Noahor Adamu Adamor Lalaperu thereor 
any black boy. Then I could give him ordersand keep him penned 
away from me; and men like you would leave me aloneand not talk 
marriage and 'I wantI want.'" 
Sheldon laughed in spite of himselfand far from any genuine 
impulse to laugh. 
You are positively soulless,he said savagely. 
Because I've a soul that doesn't yearn for a man for master?she 
took up the gage. "Very wellthen. I am soullessand what are 
you going to do about it?" 
I am going to ask you why you look like a woman? Why have you the 
form of a woman? the lips of a woman? the wonderful hair of a 
woman? And I am going to answer: because you are a woman--though 
the woman in you is asleep--and that some day the woman will wake 
up.
Heaven forbid!she criedin such sudden and genuine dismay as to 
make him laughand to bring a smile to her own lips against 
herself. 
I've got some more to say to you,Sheldon pursued. "I did try to 
protect you from every other man in the Solomonsand from yourself 
as well. As for meI didn't dream that danger lay in that 
quarter. So I failed to protect you from myself. I failed to 
protect you at all. You went your own wilful wayjust as though I 
didn't exist--wrecking schoonersrecruiting on Malaitaand 
sailing schooners; one loneunprotected girl in the company of 
some of the worst scoundrels in the Solomons. Fowler! and Brahms! 
and Curtis! And such is the perverseness of human nature--I am 
frankyou see--I love you for that too. I love you for all of 
youjust as you are." 
She made a moue of distaste and raised a hand protestingly. 
Don't,he said. "You have no right to recoil from the mention of 
my love for you. Remember this is a man-talk. From the point of 
view of the talkyou are a man. The woman in you is only 
incidentalaccidentaland irrelevant. You've got to listen to 
the bald statement of factstrange though it isthat I love you." 
And now I won't bother you any more about love. We'll go on the 
same as before. You are better off and safer on Berande, in spite 
of the fact that I love you, than anywhere else in the Solomons. 
But I want you, as a final item of man-talk, to remember, from time 
to time, that I love you, and that it will be the dearest day of my 
life when you consent to marry me. I want you to think of it 
sometimes. You can't help but think of it sometimes. And now we 
won't talk about it any more. As between men, there's my hand.
He held out his hand. She hesitatedthen gripped it heartilyand 
smiled through her tears. 
I wish--she falteredI wish, instead of that black Mary, you'd 
given me somebody to swear for me.
And with this enigmatic utterance she turned away. 
CHAPTER XXI--CONTRABAND 
Sheldon did not mention the subject againnor did his conduct 
change from what it had always been. There was nothing of the 
pining lovernor of the lover at allin his demeanour. Nor was 
there any awkwardness between them. They were as frank and 
friendly in their relations as ever. He had wondered if his 
belligerent love declaration might have aroused some womanly selfconsciousness 
in Joanbut he looked in vain for any sign of it. 
She appeared as unchanged as he; and while he knew that he hid his 
real feelingshe was firm in his belief that she hid nothing. And 
yet the germ he had implanted must be at work; he was confident of 
thatthough he was without confidence as to the result. There was 
no forecasting this strange girl's processes. She might awakenit 
was true; and on the other handand with equal chancehe might be 
the wrong man for herand his declaration of love might only more 
firmly set her in her views on single blessedness. 
While he devoted more and more of his time to the plantation 
itselfshe took over the house and its multitudinous affairs; and 
she took hold firmlyin sailor fashionrevolutionizing the system 
and discipline. The labour situation on Berande was improving. 
The Martha had carried away fifty of the blacks whose time was up
and they had been among the worst on the plantation--five-year men 
recruited by Billy Be-blowedmen who had gone through the old days 
of terrorism when the original owners of Berande had been driven 
away. The new recruitsbeing broken in under the new regimegave 
better promise. Joan had joined with Sheldon from the start in the 
programme that they must be gripped with the strong handand at 
the same time be treated with absolute justiceif they were to 
escape being contaminated by the older boys that still remained. 
I think it would be a good idea to put all the gangs at work close 
to the house this afternoon,she announced one day at breakfast. 
I've cleaned up the house, and you ought to clean up the barracks. 
There is too much stealing going on.
A good idea,Sheldon agreed. "Their boxes should be searched. 
I've just missed a couple of shirtsand my best toothbrush is 
gone." 
And two boxes of my cartridges,she addedto say nothing of 
handkerchiefs, towels, sheets, and my best pair of slippers. But 
what they want with your toothbrush is more than I can imagine. 
They'll be stealing the billiard balls next.
One did disappear a few weeks before you came,Sheldon laughed. 
We'll search the boxes this afternoon.
And a busy afternoon it was. Joan and Sheldonboth armedwent 
through the barrackshouse by housethe boss-boys assistingand 
half a dozen messengersin relayshouting along the line the 
names of the boys wanted. Each boy brought the key to his 
particular boxand was permitted to look on while the contents 
were overhauled by the boss-boys. 
A wealth of loot was recovered. There were fully a dozen caneknives--
big hacking weapons with razor-edgescapable of 
decapitating a man at a stroke. Towelssheetsshirtsand 
slippersalong with toothbrusheswisp-broomssoapthe missing 
billiard balland all the lost and forgotten trifles of many 
monthscame to light. But most astonishing was the quantity of 
ammunition-cartridges for Lee-Metfordsfor Winchesters and 
Marlinsfor revolvers from thirty-two calibre to forty-fiveshotgun 
cartridgesJoan's two boxes of thirty-eightcartridges of 
prodigious bore for the ancient Sniders of Malaitaflasks of black 
powdersticks of dynamiteyards of fuseand boxes of detonators. 
But the great find was in the house occupied by Gogoomy and five 
Port Adams recruits. The fact that the boxes yielded nothing 
excited Sheldon's suspicionsand he gave orders to dig up the 
earthen floor. Wrapped in mattingwell oiledfree from rustand 
brand newtwo Winchesters were first unearthed. Sheldon did not 
recognize them. They had not come from Berande; neither had the 
forty flasks of black powder found under the corner-post of the 
house; and while he could not be surehe could remember no loss of 
eight boxes of detonators. A big Colt's revolver he recognized as 
Hughie Drummond's; while Joan identified a thirty-two Ivor and 
Johnson as a loss reported by Matapuu the first week he landed at 
Berande. The absence of any cartridges made Sheldon persist in the 
digging up of the floorand a fifty-pound flour tin was his 
reward. With glowering eyes Gogoomy looked on while Sheldon took 
from the tin a hundred rounds each for the two Winchesters and 
fully as many rounds more of nondescript cartridges of all sorts 
and makes and calibres. 
The contraband and stolen property was piled in assorted heaps on 
the back veranda of the bungalow. A few paces from the bottom of 
the steps were grouped the forty-odd culpritswith behind themin 
solid arraythe several hundred blacks of the plantation. At the 
head of the steps Joan and Sheldon were seatedwhile on the steps 
stood the gang-bosses. One by one the culprits were called up and 
examined. Nothing definite could be extracted from them. They 
lied transparentlybut persistentlyand when caught in one lie 
explained it away with half a dozen others. One boy complacently 
announced that he had found eleven sticks of dynamite on the beach. 
Matapuu's revolverfound in the box of one Kapuwas explained 
away by that boy as having been given to him by Lervumie. 
Lervumiecalled forth to testifysaid he had got it from Noni; 
Noni had got it from Sulefatoi; Sulefatoi from Choka; Choka from 
Ngava; and Ngava completed the circle by stating that it had been 
given to him by Kapu. Kaputhus doubly damnedcalmly gave full 
details of how it had been given to him by Lervumie; and Lervumie
with equal wealth of detailtold how he had received it from Noni; 
and from Noni to Sulefatoi it went on around the circle again. 
Divers articles were traced indubitably to the house-boyseach of 
whom steadfastly proclaimed his own innocence and cast doubts on 
his fellows. The boy with the billiard ball said that he had never 
seen it in his life beforeand hazarded the suggestion that it had 
got into his box through some mysterious and occultly evil agency. 
So far as he was concerned it might have dropped down from heaven 
for all he knew how it got there. To the cooks and boats'-crews of 
every vessel that had dropped anchor off Berande in the past 
several years were ascribed the arrival of scores of the stolen 
articles and of the major portion of the ammunition. There was no 
tracing the truth in any of itthough it was without doubt that 
the unidentified weapons and unfamiliar cartridges had come ashore 
off visiting craft. 
Look at it,Sheldon said to Joan. "We've been sleeping over a 
volcano. They ought to be whipped--" 
No whip me,Gogoomy cried out from below. "Father belong me big 
fella chief. Me whiptoo much trouble along youclose upmy 
word." 
What name you fella Gogoomy!Sheldon shouted. "I knock seven 
bells out of you. Hereyou Kwaqueput 'm irons along that fella 
Gogoomy." 
Kwaquea strapping gang-bossplucked Gogoomy from out of his 
followingandhelped by the other gang-bosses; twisted his arms 
behind him and snapped on the heavy handcuffs. 
Me finish along you, close up, you die altogether,Gogoomywith 
wrath-distorted facethreatened the boss-boy. 
Please, no whipping,Joan said in a low voice. "If whipping IS 
necessarysend them to Tulagi and let the Government do it. Give 
them their choice between a fine or an official whipping." 
Sheldon nodded and stood upfacing the blacks. 
Manonmie!he called. 
Manonmie stood forth and waited. 
You fella boy bad fella too much,Sheldon charged. "You steal 'm 
plenty. You steal 'm one fella towelone fella cane-knifetwoten 
fella cartridge. My wordplenty bad fella steal 'm you. Me 
cross along you too much. S'pose you like 'mme take 'm one fella 
pound along you in big book. S'pose you no like 'm me take 'm one 
fella poundthen me send you fella along Tulagi catch 'm one 
strong fella government whipping. Plenty New Georgia boysplenty 
Ysabel boys stop along jail along Tulagi. Them fella no like 
Malaita boys little bit. My wordthey give 'm you strong fella 
whipping. What you say?" 
You take 'm one fella pound along me,was the answer. 
And Manonmiepatently relievedstepped backwhile Sheldon 
entered the fine in the plantation labour journal. 
Boy after boyhe called the offenders out and gave them their 
choice; andboy by boyeach one elected to pay the fine imposed. 
Some fines were as low as several shillings; while in the more 
serious casessuch as thefts of guns and ammunitionthe fines 
were correspondingly heavy. 
Gogoomy and his five tribesmen were fined three pounds eachand at 
Gogoomy's guttural command they refused to pay. 
S'pose you go along Tulagi,Sheldon warned himyou catch 'm 
strong fella whipping and you stop along jail three fella year. 
Mr. Burnett, he look 'm along Winchester, look 'm along cartridge, 
look 'm along revolver, look 'm along black powder, look 'm along 
dynamite--my word, he cross too much, he give you three fella year 
along jail. S'pose you no like 'm pay three fella pound you stop 
along jail. Savvee?
Gogoomy wavered. 
It's true--that's what Burnett would give them,Sheldon said in 
an aside to Joan. 
You take 'm three fella pound along me,Gogoomy mutteredat the 
same time scowling his hatred at Sheldonand transferring half the 
scowl to Joan and Kwaque. "Me finish along youyou catch 'm big 
fella troublemy word. Father belong me big fella chief along 
Port Adams." 
That will do,Sheldon warned him. "You shut mouth belong you." 
Me no fright,the son of a chief retortedby his insolence 
increasing his stature in the eyes of his fellows. 
Lock him up for to-night,Sheldon said to Kwaque. "Sun he come 
up put 'm that fella and five fella belong him along grass-cutting. 
Savvee?" 
Kwaque grinned. 
Me savvee,he said. "Cut 'm grassngari-ngari {4} stop 'm along 
grass. My word!" 
There will be trouble with Gogoomy yet,Sheldon said to Joanas 
the boss-boys marshalled their gangs and led them away to their 
work. "Keep an eye on him. Be careful when you are riding alone 
on the plantation. The loss of those Winchesters and all that 
ammunition has hit him harder than your cuffing did. He is deadripe 
for mischief." 
CHAPTER XXII--GOGOOMY FINISHES ALONG KWAQUE ALTOGETHER 
I wonder what has become of Tudor. It's two months since he 
disappeared into the bush, and not a word of him after he left 
Binu.
Joan Lackland was sitting astride her horse by the bank of the 
Balesuna where the sweet corn had been plantedand Sheldonwho 
had come across from the house on footwas leaning against her 
horse's shoulder. 
Yes, it is along time for no news to have trickled down,he 
answeredwatching her keenly from under his hat-brim and wondering 
as to the measure of her anxiety for the adventurous gold-hunter; 
but Tudor will come out all right. He did a thing at the start 
that I wouldn't have given him or any other man credit for-persuaded 
Binu Charley to go along with him. I'll wager no other 
Binu nigger has ever gone so far into the bush unless to be kaikai'd. 
As for Tudor--
Look! look!Joan cried in a low voicepointing across the 
narrow stream to a slack eddy where a huge crocodile drifted like a 
log awash. "My! I wish I had my rifle." 
The crocodileleaving scarcely a ripple behindsank down and 
disappeared. 
A Binu man was in early this morning--for medicine,Sheldon 
remarked. "It may have been that very brute that was responsible. 
A dozen of the Binu women were outand the foremost one stepped 
right on a big crocodile. It was by the edge of the waterand he 
tumbled her over and got her by the leg. All the other women got 
hold of her and pulled. And in the tug of war she lost her leg
below the kneehe said. I gave him a stock of antiseptics. 
She'll pull throughI fancy." 
Ugh--the filthy beasts,Joan gulped shudderingly. "I hate them! 
I hate them!" 
And yet you go diving among sharks,Sheldon chided. 
They're only fish-sharks. And as long as there are plenty of fish 
there is no danger. It is only when they're famished that they're 
liable to take a bite.
Sheldon shuddered inwardly at the swift vision that arose of the 
dainty flesh of her in a shark's many-toothed maw. 
I wish you wouldn't, just the same,he said slowly. "You 
acknowledge there is a risk." 
But that's half the fun of it,she cried. 
A trite platitude about his not caring to lose her was on his lips
but he refrained from uttering it. Another conclusion he had 
arrived at was that she was not to be nagged. Continualor even 
occasionalreminders of his feeling for her would constitute a 
tactical error of no mean dimensions. 
Some for the book of verse, some for the simple life, and some for 
the shark's belly,he laughed grimlythen added: "Just the same
I wish I could swim as well as you. Maybe it would beget 
confidence such as you have." 
Do you know, I think it would be nice to be married to a man such 
as you seem to be becoming,she remarkedwith one of her abrupt 
changes that always astounded him. "I should think you could be 
trained into a very good husband--you knownot one of the 
domineering kindbut one who considered his wife was just as much 
an individual as himself and just as much a free agent. Really
you knowI think you are improving." 
She laughed and rode awayleaving him greatly cast down. If he 
had thought there had been one bit of coyness in her wordsone 
feminine flutterone womanly attempt at deliberate lure and 
encouragementhe would have been elated. But he knew absolutely 
that it was the boyand not the womanwho had so daringly spoken. 
Joan rode on among the avenues of young cocoanut-palmssaw a 
hornbillfollowed it in its erratic flights to the high forest on 
the edge of the plantationheard the cooing of wild pigeons and 
located them in the deeper woodsfollowed the fresh trail of a 
wild pig for a distancecircled backand took the narrow path for 
the bungalow that ran through twenty acres of uncleared cane. The 
grass was waist-high and higherand as she rode along she 
remembered that Gogoomy was one of a gang of boys that had been 
detailed to the grass-cutting. She came to where they had been at 
workbut saw no signs of them. Her unshod horse made no sound on 
the softsandy footingand a little further on she heard voices 
proceeding from out of the grass. She reined in and listened. It 
was Gogoomy talkingand as she listened she gripped her bridlerein 
tightly and a wave of anger passed over her. 
Dog he stop 'm along house, night-time he walk about,Gogoomy was 
sayingperforce in beche-de-mer Englishbecause he was talking to 
others beside his own tribesmen. "You fella boy catch 'm one fella 
pigput 'm kai-kai belong him along big fella fish-hook. S'pose 
dog he walk about catch 'm kai-kaiyou fella boy catch 'm dog 
allee same one shark. Dog he finish close up. Big fella marster 
sleep along big fella house. White Mary sleep along pickaninny 
house. One fella Adamu he stop along outside pickaninny house. 
You fella boy finish 'm dogfinish 'm Adamufinish 'm big fella 
marsterfinish 'm White Maryfinish 'em altogether. Plenty 
musket he stopplenty powderplenty tomahawkplenty knife-fee
plenty porpoise teethplenty tobaccoplenty calico--my wordtoo 
much plenty everything we take 'm along whale-boatwashee {5} like 
hellsun he come up we long way too much." 
Me catch 'm pig sun he go down,spoke up one whose thin falsetto 
voice Joan recognized as belonging to Cosseone of Gogoomy's 
tribesmen. 
Me catch 'm dog,said another. 
And me catch 'm white fella Mary,Gogoomy cried triumphantly. 
Me catch 'm Kwaque he die along him damn quick.
This much Joan heard of the plan to murderand then her rising 
wrath proved too much for her discretion. She spurred her horse 
into the grasscrying
What name you fella boy, eh? What name?
They arosescrambling and scatteringand to her surprise she saw 
there were a dozen of them. As she looked in their glowering faces 
and noted the heavytwo-foothacking cane-knives in their hands
she became suddenly aware of the rashness of her act. If only she 
had had her revolver or a rifleall would have been well. But she 
had carelessly ventured out unarmedand she followed the glance of 
Gogoomy to her waist and saw the pleased flash in his eyes as he 
perceived the absence of the dreadful man-killing revolver. 
The first article in the Solomon Islands code for white men was 
never to show fear before a nativeand Joan tried to carry off the 
situation in cavalier fashion. 
Too much talk along you fella boy,she said severely. "Too much 
talktoo little work. Savvee?" 
Gogoomy made no replybutapparently shifting weighthe slid one 
foot forward. The other boysspread fan-wise about herwere also 
sliding forwardthe cruel cane-knives in their hands advertising 
their intention. 
You cut 'm grass!she commanded imperatively. 
But Gogoomy slid his other foot forward. She measured the distance 
with her eye. It would be impossible to whirl her horse around and 
get away. She would be chopped down from behind. 
And in that tense moment the faces of all of them were imprinted on 
her mind in an unforgettable picture--one of theman old manwith 
torn and distended ear-lobes that fell to his chest; anotherwith 
the broad flattened nose of Africaand with withered eyes so 
buried under frowning brows that nothing but the sicklyyellowishlooking 
whites could be seen; a thirdthick-lipped and bearded 
with kinky whiskers; and Gogoomy--she had never realized before how 
handsome Gogoomy was in his mutinous and obstinate wild-animal way. 
There was a primitive aristocraticness about him that his fellows 
lacked. The lines of his figure were more rounded than theirsthe 
skin smoothwell oiledand free from disease. On his chest
suspended from a single string of porpoise-teeth around his throat
hung a big crescent carved out of opalescent pearl-shell. A row of 
pure white cowrie shells banded his brow. From his hair drooped a 
longlone feather. Above the swelling calf of one leg he woreas 
a gartera single string of white beads. The effect was dandyish 
in the extreme. A narrow gee-string completed his costume. 
Another man she sawold and shrivelledwith puckered forehead and 
a puckered face that trembled and worked with animal passion as in 
the past she had noticed the faces of monkeys tremble and work. 
Gogoomy,she said sharplyyou no cut 'm grass, my word, I bang 
'm head belong you.
His expression became a trifle more disdainfulbut he did not 
answer. Insteadhe stole a glance to right and left to mark how 
his fellows were closing about her. At the same moment he casually 
slipped his foot forward through the grass for a matter of several 
inches. 
Joan was keenly aware of the desperateness of the situation. The 
only way out was through. She lifted her riding-whip 
threateninglyand at the same moment drove in both spurs with her 
heelsrushing the startled horse straight at Gogoomy. It all 
happened in an instant. Every cane-knife was liftedand every boy 
save Gogoomy leaped for her. He swerved aside to avoid the horse
at the same time swinging his cane-knife in a slicing blow that 
would have cut her in twain. She leaned forward under the flying 
steelwhich cut through her riding-skirtthrough the edge of the 
saddlethrough the saddle clothand even slightly into the horse 
itself. Her right handstill raisedcame downthe thin whip 
whishing through the air. She saw the whitecooked mark of the 
weal clear across the sullenhandsome faceand still what was 
practically in the same instant she saw the man with the puckered 
faceoverriddengo down before herand she heard his snarling 
and grimacing chatter-for all the world like an angry monkey. Then 
she was free and awayheading the horse at top speed for the 
house. 
Out of her sea-training she was able to appreciate Sheldon's 
executiveness when she burst in on him with her news. Springing 
from the steamer-chair in which he had been lounging while waiting 
for breakfasthe clapped his hands for the house-boys; andwhile 
listening to herhe was buckling on his cartridge-belt and running 
the mechanism of his automatic pistol. 
Ornfiri,he snapped out his ordersyou fella ring big fella 
bell strong fella plenty. You finish 'm bell, you put 'm saddle on 
horse. Viaburi, you go quick house belong Seelee he stop, tell 'm 
plenty black fella run away--ten fella two fella black fella boy.
He scribbled a note and handed it to Lalaperu. "Lalaperuyou go 
quick house belong white fella Marster Boucher." 
That will head them back from the coast on both sides,he 
explained to Joan. "And old Seelee will turn his whole village 
loose on their track as well." 
In response to the summons of the big bellJoan's Tahitians were 
the first to arriveby their glistening bodies and panting chests 
showing that they had run all the way. Some of the farthest-placed 
gangs would be nearly an hour in arriving. 
Sheldon proceeded to arm Joan's sailors and deal out ammunition and 
handcuffs. Adamu Adamwith loaded riflehe placed on guard over 
the whale-boats. Noa Noahaided by Matapuuwere instructed to 
take charge of the working-gangs as fast as they came into keep 
them amusedand to guard against their being stampeded into making 
a break themselves. The five other Tahitians were to follow Joan 
and Sheldon on foot. 
I'm glad we unearthed that arsenal the other day,Sheldon 
remarked as they rode out of the compound gate. 
A hundred yards away they encountered one of the clearing gangs 
coming in. It was Kwaque's gangbut Sheldon looked in vain for 
him. 
What name that fella Kwaque he no stop along you?he demanded. 
A babel of excited voices attempted an answer. 
Shut 'm mouth belong you altogether,Sheldon commanded. 
He spoke roughlyliving up to the role of the white man who must 
always be strong and dominant. 
Here, you fella Babatani, you talk 'm mouth belong you.
Babatani stepped forward in all the pride of one singled out from 
among his fellows. 
Gogoomy he finish along Kwaque altogether,was Babatani's 
explanation. "He take 'm head b'long him run like hell." 
In brief wordsand with paucity of imaginationhe described the 
murderand Sheldon and Joan rode on. In the grasswhere Joan had 
been attackedthey found the little shrivelled manstill 
chattering and grimacingwhom Joan had ridden down. The mare had 
plunged on his anklecompletely crushing itand a hundred yards' 
crawl had convinced him of the futility of escape. To the last 
clearing-gangfrom the farthest edge of the plantationwas given 
the task of carrying him in to the house. 
A mile farther onwhere the runaways' trail led straight toward 
the bushthey encountered the body of Kwaque. The head had been 
hacked off and was missingand Sheldon took it on faith that the 
body was Kwaque's. He had evidently put up a fightfor a bloody 
trail led away from the body. 
Once they were well into the thick bush the horses had to be 
abandoned. Papehara was left in charge of themwhile Joan and 
Sheldon and the remaining Tahitians pushed ahead on foot. The way 
led down through a swampy hollowwhich was overflowed by the 
Berande River on occasionand where the red trail of the murderers 
was crossed by a crocodile's trail. They had apparently caught the 
creature asleep in the sun and desisted long enough from their 
flight to hack him to pieces. Here the wounded man had sat down 
and waited until they were ready to go on. 
An hour laterfollowing along a wild-pig trailSheldon suddenly 
halted. The bloody tracks had ceased. The Tahitians cast out in 
the bush on either sideand a cry from Utami apprised them of a 
find. Joan waited till Sheldon came back. 
It's Mauko,he said. "Kwaque did for himand he crawled in 
there and died. That's two accounted for. There are ten more. 
Don't you think you've got enough of it?" 
She nodded. 
It isn't nice,she said. "I'll go back and wait for you with the 
horses." 
But you can't go alone. Take two of the men.
Then I'll go on,she said. "It would be foolish to weaken the 
pursuitand I am certainly not tired." 
The trail bent to the right as though the runaways had changed 
their mind and headed for the Balesuna. But the trail still 
continued to bend to the right till it promised to make a loopand 
the point of intersection seemed to be the edge of the plantation 
where the horses had been left. Crossing one of the quiet jungle 
spaceswhere naught moved but a velvetytwelve-inch butterfly
they heard the sound of shots. 
Eight,Joan counted. "It was only one gun. It must be 
Papehara." 
They hurried onbut when they reached the spot they were in doubt. 
The two horses stood quietly tetheredand Papeharasquatted on 
his hamswas having a peaceful smoke. Advancing toward him
Sheldon tripped on a body that lay in the grassand as he saved 
himself from falling his eyes lighted on a second. Joan recognized 
this one. It was Cosseone of Gogoomy's tribesmenthe one who 
had promised to catch at sunset the pig that was to have baited the 
hook for Satan. 
No luck, Missie,was Papehara's greetingaccompanied by a 
disconsolate shake of the head. "Catch only two boy. I have good 
shot at Gogoomyonly I miss." 
But you killed them,Joan chided. "You must catch them alive." 
The Tahitian smiled. 
How?he queried. "I am have a smoke. I think about Tahitiand 
breadfruitand jolly good time at Bora Bora. Quickjust like 
thatten boy he run out of bush for me. Each boy have long knife. 
Gogoomy have long knife one handand Kwaque's head in other hand. 
I no stop to catch 'm alive. I shoot like hell. How you catch 'm 
aliveten boyten long knifeand Kwaque's head?" 
The scattered paths of the different boyswhere they broke back 
after the disastrous attempt to rush the Tahitiansoon led 
together. They traced it to the Berandewhich the runaways had 
crossed with the clear intention of burying themselves in the huge 
mangrove swamp that lay beyond. 
There is no use our going any farther,Sheldon said. "Seelee 
will turn out his village and hunt them out of that. They'll never 
get past him. All we can do is to guard the coast and keep them 
from breaking back on the plantation and running amuck. AhI 
thought so." 
Against the jungle gloom of the farther shorecoming from down 
streama small canoe glided. So silently did it move that it was 
more like an apparition. Three naked blacks dipped with noiseless 
paddles. Long-haftedslenderbone-barbed throwing-spears lay 
along the gunwale of the canoewhile a quiverful of arrows hung on 
each man's back. The eyes of the man-hunters missed nothing. They 
had seen Sheldon and Joan firstbut they gave no sign. Where 
Gogoomy and his followers had emerged from the riverthe canoe 
abruptly stoppedthen turned and disappeared into the deeper 
mangrove gloom. A second and a third canoe came around the bend 
from belowglided ghostlike to the crossing of the runawaysand 
vanished in the mangroves. 
I hope there won't be any more killing,Joan saidas they turned 
their horses homeward. 
I don't think so,Sheldon assured her. "My understanding with 
old Seelee is that he is paid only for live boys; so he is very 
careful." 
CHAPTER XXIII--A MESSAGE FROM THE BUSH 
Never had runaways from Berande been more zealously hunted. The 
deeds of Gogoomy and his fellows had been a bad example for the one 
hundred and fifty new recruits. Murder had been planneda gang-
boss had been killedand the murderers had broken their contracts 
by fleeing to the bush. Sheldon saw how imperative it was to teach 
his new-caught cannibals that bad examples were disastrous things 
to pattern afterand he urged Seelee on night and daywhile with 
the Tahitians he practically lived in the bushleaving Joan in 
charge of the plantation. To the north Boucher did good work
twice turning the fugitives back when they attempted to gain the 
coast. 
One by one the boys were captured. In the first man-drive through 
the mangrove swamp Seelee caught two. Circling around to the 
northa third was wounded in the thigh by Boucherand this one
dragging behind in the chasewas later gathered in by Seelee's 
hunters. The three captivesheavily ironedwere exposed each day 
in the compoundas good examples of what happened to bad examples
all for the edification of the seven score and ten half-wild 
Poonga-Poonga men. Then the Minervarunning past for Tulagiwas 
signalled to send a boatand the three prisoners were carried away 
to prison to await trial. 
Five were still at largebut escape was impossible. They could 
not get down to the coastnor dared they venture too far inland 
for fear of the wild bushmen. Then one of the five came in 
voluntarily and gave himself upand Sheldon learned that Gogoomy 
and two others were all that were at large. There should have been 
a fourthbut according to the man who had given himself upthe 
fourth man had been killed and eaten. It had been fear of a 
similar fate that had driven him in. He was a Malu manfrom 
north-western Malaitaas likewise had been the one that was eaten. 
Gogoomy's two other companions were from Port Adams. As for 
himselfthe black declared his preference for government trial and 
punishment to being eaten by his companions in the bush. 
Close up Gogoomy kai-kai me,he said. "My wordme no like boy 
kai-kai me." 
Three days later Sheldon caught one of the boyshelpless from 
swamp feverand unable to fight or run away. On the same day 
Seelee caught the second boy in similar condition. Gogoomy alone 
remained at large; andas the pursuit closed in on himhe 
conquered his fear of the bushmen and headed straight in for the 
mountainous backbone of the island. Sheldon with four Tahitians
and Seelee with thirty of his huntersfollowed Gogoomy's trail a 
dozen miles into the open grass-landsand then Seelee and his 
people lost heart. He confessed that neither he nor any of his 
tribe had ever ventured so far inland beforeand he narratedfor 
Sheldon's benefitmost horrible tales of the horrible bushmen. In 
the old dayshe saidthey had crossed the grasslands and attacked 
the salt-water natives; but since the coming of the white men to 
the coast they had remained in their interior fastnessesand no 
salt-water native had ever seen them again. 
Gogoomy he finish along them fella bushmen,he assured Sheldon. 
My word, he finish close up, kai-kai altogether.
So the expedition turned back. Nothing could persuade the coast 
natives to venture fartherand Sheldonwith his four Tahitians
knew that it was madness to go on alone. So he stood waist-deep in 
the grass and looked regretfully across the rolling savannah and 
the soft-swelling foothills to the Lion's Heada massive peak of 
rock that upreared into the azure from the midmost centre of 
Guadalcanara landmark used for bearings by every coasting 
marinera mountain as yet untrod by the foot of a white man. 
That nightafter dinnerSheldon and Joan were playing billiards
when Satan barked in the compoundand Lalaperusent to see
brought back a tired and travel-stained nativewho wanted to talk 
with the "big fella white marster." It was only the man's 
insistence that procured him admittance at such an hour. Sheldon 
went out on the veranda to see himand at first glance at the 
gaunt features and wasted body of the man knew that his errand was 
likely to prove important. NeverthelessSheldon demanded roughly
-
What name you come along house belong me sun he go down?
Me Charley,the man muttered apologetically and wearily. "Me 
stop along Binu." 
Ah, Binu Charley, eh? Well, what name you talk along me? What 
place big fella marster along white man he stop?
Joan and Sheldon together listened to the tale Binu Charley had 
brought. He described Tudor's expedition up the Balesuna; the 
dragging of the boats up the rapids; the passage up the river where 
it threaded the grass-lands; the innumerable washings of gravel by 
the white men in search of gold; the first rolling foothills; the 
man-traps of spear-staked pits in the jungle trails; the first 
meeting with the bushmenwho had never seen tobaccoand knew not 
the virtues of smoking; their friendliness; the deeper penetration 
of the interior around the flanks of the Lion's Head; the bushsores 
and the fevers of the white menand their madness in 
trusting the bushmen. 
Allee time I talk along white fella marster,he said. "Me talk
'That fella bushman he look 'm eye belong him. He savvee too much. 
S'pose musket he stop along youthat fella bushman he too much 
good friend along you. Allee time he look sharp eye belong him. 
S'pose musket he no stop along youmy wordthat fella bushman he 
chop 'm off head belong you. He kai-kai you altogether.'" 
But the patience of the bushmen had exceeded that of the white men. 
The weeks had gone byand no overt acts had been attempted. The 
bushmen swarmed in the camp in increasing numbersand they were 
always making presents of yams and taroof pig and fowland of 
wild fruits and vegetables. Whenever the gold-hunters moved their 
campthe bushmen volunteered to carry the luggage. And the white 
men waxed ever more careless. They grew weary prospectingand at 
the same time carrying their rifles and the heavy cartridge-belts
and the practice began of leaving their weapons behind them in 
camp. 
I tell 'm plenty fella white marster look sharp eye belong him. 
And plenty fella white marster make 'm big laugh along me, say Binu 
Charley allee same pickaninny--my word, they speak along me allee 
same pickaninny.
Came the morning when Binu Charley noticed that the women and 
children had disappeared. Tudorat the timewas lying in a 
stupor with fever in a late camp five miles awaythe main camp 
having moved on those five miles in order to prospect an outcrop of 
likely quartz. Binu Charley was midway between the two camps when 
the absence of the women and children struck him as suspicious. 
My word,he saidme t'ink like hell. Him black Mary, him 
pickaninny, walk about long way big bit. What name? Me savvee too 
much trouble close up. Me fright like hell. Me run. My word, me 
run.
Tudorquite unconsciouswas slung across his shoulderand 
carried a mile down the trail. Herehiding new trailBinu 
Charley had carried him for a quarter of a mile into the heart of 
the deepest jungleand hidden him in a big banyan tree. Returning 
to try to save the rifles and personal outfitBinu Charley had 
seen a party of bushmen trotting down the trailand had hidden in 
the bush. Hereand from the direction of the main camphe had 
heard two rifle shots. And that was all. He had never seen the 
white men againnor had he ventured near their old camp. He had 
gone back to Tudorand hidden with him for a weekliving on wild 
fruits and the few pigeons and cockatoos he had been able to shoot 
with bow and arrow. Then he had journeyed down to Berande to bring 
the news. Tudorhe saidwas very sicklying unconscious for 
days at a timeandwhen in his right mindtoo weak to help 
himself. 
What name you no kill 'm that big fella marster?Joan demanded. 
He have 'm good fella musket, plenty calico, plenty tobacco, 
plenty knife-fee, and two fella pickaninny musket shoot quick, 
bang-bang-bang--just like that.
The black smiled cunningly. 
Me savvee too much. S'pose me kill 'm big fella marster, bimeby 
plenty white fella marster walk about Binu cross like hell. 'What 
name this fellow musket?' those plenty fella white marster talk 'm 
along me. My word, Binu Charley finish altogether. S'pose me kill 
'm him, no good along me. Plenty white fella marster cross along 
me. S'pose me no kill 'm him, bimeby he give me plenty tobacco, 
plenty calico, plenty everything too much.
There is only the one thing to do,Sheldon said to Joan. 
She drummed with her hand and waitedwhile Binu Charley gazed 
wearily at her with unblinking eyes. 
I'll start the first thing in the morning,Sheldon said. 
We'll start,she corrected. "I can get twice as much out of my 
Tahitians as you canandbesidesone white should never be alone 
under such circumstances." 
He shrugged his shoulders in tokennot of consentbut of 
surrenderknowing the uselessness of attempting to argue the 
question with herand consoling himself with the reflection that 
heaven alone knew what adventures she was liable to engage in if 
left alone on Berande for a week. He clapped his handsand for 
the next quarter of an hour the house-boys were kept busy carrying 
messages to the barracks. A man was sent to Balesuna village to 
command old Seelee's immediate presence. A boat's-crew was started 
in a whale-boat with word for Boucher to come down. Ammunition was 
issued to the Tahitiansand the storeroom overhauled for a few 
days' tinned provisions. Viaburi turned yellow when told that he 
was to accompany the expeditionandto everybody's surprise
Lalaperu volunteered to take his place. 
Seelee arrivedproud in his importance that the great master of 
Berande should summon him in the night-time for counciland firm 
in his refusal to step one inch within the dread domain of the 
bushmen. As he saidif his opinion had been asked when the goldhunters 
startedhe would have foretold their disastrous end. 
There was only one thing that happened to any one who ventured into 
the bushmen's territoryand that was that he was eaten. And he 
would further saywithout being askedthat if Sheldon went up 
into the bush he would be eaten too. 
Sheldon sent for a gang-boss and told him to bring ten of the 
biggestbestand strongest Poonga-Poonga men. 
Not salt-water boys,Sheldon cautionedbut bush boys--leg 
belong him strong fella leg. Boy no savvee musket, no good. You 
bring 'm boy shoot musket strong fella.
They were ten picked men that filed up on the veranda and stood in 
the glare of the lanterns. Their heavymuscular legs advertised 
that they were bushmen. Each claimed long experience in bushfighting
most of them showed scars of bullet or spear-thrust in 
proofand all were wild for a chance to break the humdrum monotony 
of plantation labour by going on a killing expedition. Killing was 
their natural vocationnot wood-cutting; and while they would not 
have ventured the Guadalcanar bush alonewith a white man like 
Sheldon behind themand a white Mary such as they knew Joan to be
they could expect a safe and delightful time. Besidesthe great 
master had told them that the eight gigantic Tahitians were going 
along. 
The Poonga-Poonga volunteers stood with glistening eyes and 
grinning facesnaked save for their loin-clothsand barbarously 
ornamented. Each wore a flatturtle-shell ring suspended through 
his noseand each carried a clay pipe in an ear-hole or thrust 
inside a beaded biceps armlet. A pair of magnificent boar tusks 
graced the chest of one. On the chest of another hung a huge disc 
of polished fossil clam-shell. 
Plenty strong fella fight,Sheldon warned them in conclusion. 
They grinned and shifted delightedly. 
S'pose bushmen kai-kai along you?he queried. 
No fear,answered their spokesmanone Koogooa strapping
thick-lipped Ethiopian-looking man. "S'pose Poonga-Poonga boy kaikai 
bush-boy?" 
Sheldon shook his headlaughingand dismissed themand went to 
overhaul the dunnage-room for a small shelter tent for Joan's use. 
CHAPTER XXIV--IN THE BUSH 
It was quite a formidable expedition that departed from Berande at 
break of day next morning in a fleet of canoes and dinghies. There 
were Joan and Sheldonwith Binu Charley and Lalaperuthe eight 
Tahitiansand the ten Poonga-Poonga meneach proud in the 
possession of a bright and shining modern rifle. In addition
there were two of the plantation boat's-crews of six men each. 
Thesehoweverwere to go no farther than Carliwhere water 
transportation ceased and where they were to wait with the boats. 
Boucher remained behind in charge of Berande. 
By eleven in the morning the expedition arrived at Binua cluster 
of twenty houses on the river bank. And from here thirty odd Binu 
men accompanied themarmed with spears and arrowschattering and 
grimacing with delight at the warlike array. The long quiet 
stretches of river gave way to swifter waterand progress was 
slower and more dogged. The Balesuna grew shallow as welland 
oftener were the loaded boats bumped along and half-lifted over the 
bottom. In places timber-falls blocked the passage of the narrow 
streamand the boats and canoes were portaged around. Night 
brought them to Carliand they had the satisfaction of knowing 
that they had accomplished in one day what had required two days 
for Tudor's expedition. 
Here at Carlinext morninghalf-way through the grass-landsthe 
boat's-crews were leftand with them the horde of Binu menthe 
boldest of which held on for a bare mile and then ran scampering 
back. Binu Charleyhoweverwas at the foreand led the way 
onward into the rolling foot-hillsfollowing the trail made by 
Tudor and his men weeks before. That night they camped well into 
the hills and deep in the tropic jungle. The third day found them 
on the run-ways of the bushmen--narrow paths that compelled single 
file and that turned and twisted with endless convolutions through 
the dense undergrowth. For the most part it was a silent forest
lush and dankwhere only occasionally a wood-pigeon cooed or snowwhite 
cockatoos laughed harshly in laborious flight. 
Herein the mid-morningthe first casualty occurred. Binu 
Charley had dropped behind for a timeand Koogoothe Poonga-
Poonga man who had boasted that he would eat the bushmenwas in 
the lead. Joan and Sheldon heard the twanging thrum and saw Koogoo 
throw out his armsat the same time dropping his riflestumble 
forwardand sink down on his hands and knees. Between his naked 
shoulderslow down and to the leftappeared the bone-barbed head 
of an arrow. He had been shot through and through. Cocked rifles 
swept the bush with nervous apprehension. But there was no rustle
no movement; nothing but the humid oppressive silence. 
Bushmen he no stop,Binu Charley called outthe sound of his 
voice startling more than one of them. "Allee same damn funny 
business. That fella Koogoo no look 'm eye belong him. He no 
savvee little bit." 
Koogoo's arms had crumpled under himand he lay quivering where he 
had fallen. Even as Binu Charley came to the front the stricken 
black's breath passed from himand with a final convulsive stir he 
lay still. 
Right through the heart,Sheldon saidstraightening up from the 
stooping examination. "It must have been a trap of some sort." 
He noticed Joan's whitetense faceand the wide eyes with which 
she stared at the wreck of what had been a man the minute before. 
I recruited that boy myself,she said in a whisper. "He came 
down out of the bush at Poonga-Poonga and right on board the Martha 
and offered himself. And I was proud. He was my very first 
recruit--" 
My word! Look 'm that fella,Binu Charley interruptedbrushing 
aside the leafy wall of the run-way and exposing a bow so massive 
that no one bushman could have bent it. 
The Binu man traced out the mechanics of the trapand exposed the 
hidden fibre in the tangled undergrowth that at contact with 
Koogoo's foot had released the taut bow. 
They were deep in the primeval forest. A dim twilight prevailed
for no random shaft of sunlight broke through the thick roof of 
leaves and creepers overhead. The Tahitians were plainly awed by 
the silence and gloom and mystery of the place and happeningbut 
they showed themselves doggedly unafraidand were for pushing on. 
The Poonga-Poonga menon the contrarywere not awed. They were 
bushmen themselvesand they were used to this silent warfare
though the devices were different from those employed by them in 
their own bush. Most awed of all were Joan and Sheldonbutbeing 
whitesthey were not supposed to be subject to such commonplace 
emotionsand their task was to carry the situation off with 
careless bravado as befitted "big fella marsters" of the dominant 
breed. 
Binu Charley took the lead as they pushed onand trap after trap 
yielded its secret lurking-place to his keen scrutiny. The way was 
beset with a thousand annoyanceschiefest among which were thorns
cunningly concealedthat penetrated the bare feet of the invaders. 
Onceduring the afternoonBinu Charley barely missed being 
impaled in a staked pit that undermined the trail. There were 
times when all stood still and waited for half an hour or more 
while Binu Charley prospected suspicious parts of the trail. 
Sometimes he was compelled to leave the trail and creep and climb 
through the jungle so as to approach the man-traps from behind; and 
on one occasionin spite of his precautiona spring-bow was 
dischargedthe flying arrow barely clipping the shoulder of one of 
the waiting Poonga-Poonga boys. 
Where a slight run-way entered the main oneSheldon paused and 
asked Binu Charley if he knew where it led. 
Plenty bush fella garden he stop along there short way little 
bit,was the answer. "All right you like 'm go look 'm along." 
'Walk 'm easy,he cautioneda few minutes later. "Close up
that fella garden. S'pose some bush fella he stopwe catch 'm." 
Creeping ahead and peering into the clearing for a momentBinu 
Charley beckoned Sheldon to come on cautiously. Joan crouched 
beside himand together they peeped out. The cleared space was 
fully half an acre in extent and carefully fenced against the wild 
pigs. Paw-paw and banana-trees were just ripening their fruit
while beneath grew sweet potatoes and yams. On one edge of the 
clearing was a small grass houseopen-sideda mere rain-shelter. 
In front of itcrouched on his hams before a firewas a gaunt and 
bearded bushman. The fire seemed to smoke excessivelyand in the 
thick of the smoke a round dark object hung suspended. The bushman 
seemed absorbed in contemplation of this object. 
Warning them not to shoot unless the man was successfully escaping
Sheldon beckoned the Poonga-Poonga men forward. Joan smiled 
appreciatively to Sheldon. It was head-hunters against headhunters. 
The blacks trod noiselessly to their stationswhich were 
arranged so that they could spring simultaneously into the open. 
Their faces were keen and serioustheir eyes eloquent with the 
ecstasy of living that was upon them--for this was livingthis 
game of life and deathand to them it was the only game a man 
should playwithal they played it in low and cowardly ways
killing from behind in the dim forest gloom and rarely coming out 
into the open. 
Sheldon whispered the wordand the ten runners leaped forward--for 
Binu Charley ran with them. The bushman's keen ears warned him
and he sprang to his feetbow and arrow in handthe arrow fixed 
in the notch and the bow bending as he sprang. The man he let 
drive at dodged the arrowand before he could shoot another his 
enemies were upon him. He was rolled over and over and dragged to 
his feetdisarmed and helpless. 
Why, he's an ancient Babylonian!Joan criedregarding him. 
He's an Assyrian, a Phoenician! Look at that straight nose, that 
narrow face, those high cheek-bones--and that slanting, oval 
forehead, and the beard, and the eyes, too.
And the snaky locks,Sheldon laughed. 
The bushman was in mortal fearled by all his training to expect 
nothing less than death; yet he did not cower away from them. 
Insteadhe returned their looks with lean self-sufficiencyand 
finally centred his gaze upon Joanthe first white woman he had 
ever seen. 
My word, bush fella kai-kai along that fella boy,Binu Charley 
remarked. 
So stolid was his manner of utterance that Joan turned carelessly 
to see what had attracted his attentionand found herself face to 
face with Gogoomy. At leastit was the head of Gogoomy--the dark 
object they had seen hanging in the smoke. It was fresh--the 
smoke-curing had just begun--andsave for the closed eyesall the 
sullen handsomeness and animal virility of the boyas Joan had 
known itwas still to be seen in the monstrous thing that twisted 
and dangled in the eddying smoke. 
Nor was Joan's horror lessened by the conduct of the Poonga-Poonga 
boys. On the instant they recognized the headand on the instant 
rose their wild hearty laughter as they explained to one another in 
shrill falsetto voices. Gogoomy's end was a joke. He had been 
foiled in his attempt to escape. He had played the game and lost. 
And what greater joke could there be than that the bushmen should 
have eaten him? It was the funniest incident that had come under 
their notice in many a day. And to them there was certainly 
nothing unusual nor bizarre in the event. Gogoomy had completed 
the life-cycle of the bushman. He had taken headsand now his own 
head had been taken. He had eaten menand now he had been eaten 
by men. 
The Poonga-Poonga men's laughter died downand they regarded the 
spectacle with glittering eyes and gluttonous expressions. The 
Tahitianson the other handwere shockedand Adamu Adam was 
shaking his head slowly and grunting forth his disgust. Joan was 
angry. Her face was whitebut in each cheek was a vivid spray of 
red. Disgust had been displaced by wrathand her mood was clearly 
vengeful. 
Sheldon laughed. 
It's nothing to be angry over,he said. "You mustn't forget that 
he hacked off Kwaque's headand that he ate one of his own 
comrades that ran away with him. Besideshe was born to it. He 
has but been eaten out of the same trough from which he himself has 
eaten." 
Joan looked at him with lips that trembled on the verge of speech. 
And don't forget,Sheldon addedthat he is the son of a chief, 
and that as sure as fate his Port Adams tribesmen will take a white 
man's head in payment.
It is all so ghastly ridiculous,Joan finally said. 
And--er--romantic,he suggested slyly. 
She did not answerand turned away; but Sheldon knew that the 
shaft had gone home. 
That fella boy he sick, belly belong him walk about,Binu Charley 
saidpointing to the Poonga-Poonga man whose shoulder had been 
scratched by the arrow an hour before. 
The boy was sitting down and groaninghis arms clasping his bent 
kneeshis head drooped forward and rolling painfully back and 
forth. For fear of poisonSheldon had immediately scarified the 
wound and injected permanganate of potash; but in spite of the 
precaution the shoulder was swelling rapidly. 
We'll take him on to where Tudor is lying,Joan said. "The 
walking will help to keep up his circulation and scatter the 
poison. Adamu Adamyou take hold that boy. Maybe he will want to 
sleep. Shake him up. If he sleep he die." 
The advance was more rapid nowfor Binu Charley placed the captive 
bushman in front of him and made him clear the run-way of traps. 
Onceat a sharp turn where a man's shoulder would unavoidably 
brush against a screen of leavesthe bushman displayed great 
caution as he spread the leaves aside and exposed the head of a 
sharp-pointed spearso set that the casual passer-by would receive 
at the least a nasty scratch. 
My word,said Binu Charleythat fella spear allee same devildevil.
He took the spear and was examining it when suddenly he made as if 
to stick it into the bushman. It was a bit of simulated 
playfulnessbut the bushman sprang back in evident fright. 
Poisoned the weapon was beyond any doubtand thereafter Binu 
Charley carried it threateningly at the prisoner's back. 
The sunsinking behind a lofty western peakbrought on an early 
but lingering twilightand the expedition plodded on through the 
evil forest--the place of mystery and fearof death swift and 
silent and horribleof brutish appetite and degraded instinctof 
human life that still wallowed in the primeval slimeof savagery 
degenerate and abysmal. No slightest breezes blew in the gloomy 
silenceand the air was stale and humid and suffocating. The 
sweat poured unceasingly from their bodiesand in their nostrils 
was the heavy smell of rotting vegetation and of black earth that 
was a-crawl with fecund life. 
They turned aside from the run-way at a place indicated by Binu 
Charleyandsometimes crawling on hands and knees through the 
damp black muckat other times creeping and climbing through the 
tangled undergrowth a dozen feet from the groundthey came to an 
immense banyan treehalf an acre in extentthat made in the 
innermost heart of the jungle a denser jungle of its own. From out 
of its black depths came the voice of a man singing in a cracked
eerie voice. 
My word, that big fella marster he no die!
The singing stoppedand the voicefaint and weakcalled out a 
hello. Joan answeredand then the voice explained. 
I'm not wandering. I was just singing to keep my spirits up. 
Have you got anything to eat?
A few minutes saw the rescued man lying among blanketswhile fires 
were buildingwater was being carriedJoan's tent was going up
and Lalaperu was overhauling the packs and opening tins of 
provisions. Tudorhaving pulled through the fever and started to 
mendwas still frightfully weak and very much starved. So badly 
swollen was he from mosquito-bites that his face was 
unrecognizableand the acceptance of his identity was largely a 
matter of faith. Joan had her own ointments alongand she 
prefaced their application by fomenting his swollen features with 
hot cloths. Sheldonwith an eye to the camp and the preparations 
for the nightlooked on and felt the pangs of jealousy at every 
contact of her hands with Tudor's face and body. Somehowengaged 
in their healing ministrationsthey no longer seemed to him boy's 
handsthe hands of Joan who had gazed at Gogoomy's head with pale 
cheeks sprayed with angry flame. The hands were now a woman's 
handsand Sheldon grinned to himself as his fancy suggested that 
some night he must lie outside the mosquito-netting in order to 
have Joan apply soothing fomentations in the morning. 
CHAPTER XXV--THE HEAD-HUNTERS 
The morning's action had been settled the night before. Tudor was 
to stay behind in his banyan refuge and gather strength while the 
expedition proceeded. On the far chance that they might rescue 
even one solitary survivor of Tudor's partyJoan was fixed in her 
determination to push on; and neither Sheldon nor Tudor could 
persuade her to remain quietly at the banyan tree while Sheldon 
went on and searched. With TudorAdamu Adam and Arahu were to 
stop as guardsthe latter Tahitian being selected to remain 
because of a bad foot which had been brought about by stepping on 
one of the thorns concealed by the bushmen. It was evidently a 
slow poisonand not too strongthat the bushmen usedfor the 
wounded Poonga-Poonga man was still aliveand though his swollen 
shoulder was enormousthe inflammation had already begun to go 
down. Hetooremained with Tudor. 
Binu Charley led the wayby proxyhoweverforby means of the 
poisoned spearhe drove the captive bushman ahead. The run-way 
still ran through the dank and rotten jungleand they knew no 
villages would be encountered till rising ground was gained. They 
plodded onpanting and sweating in the humidstagnant air. They 
were immersed in a sea of wantonprodigal vegetation. All about 
them the huge-rooted trees blocked their footingwhile coiled and 
knotted climbersof the girth of a man's armwere thrown from 
lofty branch to lofty branchor hung in tangled masses like so 
many monstrous snakes. Lush-stalked plantslarger-leaved than the 
body of a manexuded a sweaty moisture from all their surfaces. 
Here and therebanyan treeslike rocky islandsshouldered aside 
the streaming riot of vegetation between their crowded columns
showing portals and passages wherein all daylight was lost and only 
midnight gloom remained. Tree-ferns and mosses and a myriad other 
parasitic forms jostled with gay-coloured fungoid growths for room 
to liveand the very atmosphere itself seemed to afford clinging 
space to airy fairy creeperslight and delicate as gem-dust
tremulous with microscopic blooms. Pale-golden and vermilion 
orchids flaunted their unhealthy blossoms in the goldendripping 
sunshine that filtered through the matted roof. It was the 
mysteriousevil foresta charnel house of silencewherein naught 
moved save strange tiny birds--the strangeness of them making the 
mystery more profoundfor they flitted on noiseless wings
emitting neither song nor chirpand they were mottled with morbid 
colourshaving all the seeming of orchidsflying blossoms of 
sickness and decay. 
He was caught by surprisefifteen feet in the air above the path
in the forks of a many-branched tree. All saw him as he dropped 
like a shadownaked as on his natal mornlanding springily on his 
bent kneesand like a shadow leaping along the run-way. It was 
hard for them to realize that it was a manfor he seemed a weird 
jungle spirita goblin of the forest. Only Binu Charley was not 
perturbed. He flung his poisoned spear over the head of the 
captive at the flitting form. It was a mighty castwell intended
but the shadowleapingreceived the spear harmlessly between the 
legsandtripping upon itwas flung sprawling. Before he could 
get awayBinu Charley was upon himclutching him by his snowwhite 
hair. He was only a young manand a dandy at thathis face 
blackened with charcoalhis hair whitened with wood-asheswith 
the freshly severed tail of a wild pig thrust through his 
perforated noseand two more thrust through his ears. His only 
other ornament was a necklace of human finger-bones. At sight of 
their other prisoner he chattered in a high querulous falsetto
with puckered brows and troubledwild-animal eyes. He was 
disposed of along the middle of the lineone of the Poonga-Poonga 
men leading him at the end of a length of bark-rope. 
The trail began to rise out of the jungledipping at times into 
festering hollows of unwholesome vegetationbut rising more and 
more over swellingunseen hill-slopes or climbing steep hog-backs 
and rocky hummocks where the forest thinned and blue patches of sky 
appeared overhead. 
Close up he stop,Binu Charley warned them in a whisper. 
Even as he spokefrom high overhead came the deep resonant boom of 
a village drum. But the beat was slowthere was no panic in the 
sound. They were directly beneath the villageand they could hear 
the crowing of roosterstwo women's voices raised in brief 
disputeandoncethe crying of a child. The run-way now became 
a deeply worn pathrising so steeply that several times the party 
paused for breath. The path never widenedand in places the feet 
and the rains of generations had scoured it till it was sunken 
twenty feet beneath the surface. 
One man with a rifle could hold it against a thousand,Sheldon 
whispered to Joan. "And twenty men could hold it with spears and 
arrows." 
They came out on the villagesituated on a smallupland plateau
grass-coveredand with only occasional trees. There was a wild 
chorus of warning cries from the womenwho scurried out of the 
grass housesand like frightened quail dived over the opposite 
edge of the clearinggathering up their babies and children as 
they ran. At the same time spears and arrows began to fall among 
the invaders. At Sheldon's commandthe Tahitians and Poonga-
Poonga men got into action with their rifles. The spears and 
arrows ceasedthe last bushman disappearedand the fight was over 
almost as soon as it had begun. On their own side no one had been 
hurtwhile half a dozen bushmen had been killed. These alone 
remainedthe wounded having been carried off. The Tahitians and 
Poonga-Poonga men had warmed up and were for pursuitbut this 
Sheldon would not permit. To his pleased surpriseJoan backed him 
up in the decision; forglancing at her once during the firinghe 
had seen her white facelike a glittering sword in its fighting 
intensitythe nostrils dilatedthe eyes bright and steady and 
shining. 
Poor brutes,she said. "They act only according to their 
natures. To eat their kind and take heads is good morality for 
them." 
But they should be taught not to take white men's heads,Sheldon 
argued. 
She nodded approvaland saidIf we find one head we'll burn the 
village. Hey, you, Charley! What fella place head he stop?
S'pose he stop along devil-devil house,was the answer. "That 
big fella househe devil-devil." 
It was the largest house in the villageambitiously ornamented 
with fancy-plaited mats and king-posts carved into obscene and 
monstrous forms half-human and half-animal. Into it they wentin 
the obscure light stumbling across the sleeping-logs of the village 
bachelors and knocking their heads against strings of weird votiveofferings
dried and shrivelledthat hung from the roof-beams. On 
either side were rude godssome grotesquely carvedothers no more 
than shapeless logs swathed in rotten and indescribably filthy 
matting. The air was mouldy and heavy with decaywhile strings of 
fish-tails and of half-cleaned dog and crocodile skulls did not add 
to the wholesomeness of the place. 
In the centrecrouched before a slow-smoking firein the littered 
ashes of a thousand fireswas an old man who blinked apathetically 
at the invaders. He was extremely old--so old that his withered 
skin hung about him in loose folds and did not look like skin. His 
hands were bony clawshis emaciated face a sheer death's-head. 
His taskit seemedwas to tend the fireand while he blinked at 
them he added to it a handful of dead and mouldy wood. And hung in 
the smoke they found the object of their search. Joan turned and 
stumbled out hastilydeathly sickreeling into the sunshine and 
clutching at the air for support. 
See if all are there,she called back faintlyand tottered 
aimlessly on for a few stepsbreathing the air in great draughts 
and trying to forget the sight she had seen. 
Upon Sheldon fell the unpleasant task of tallying the heads. They 
were all therenine of themwhite men's headsthe faces of which 
he had been familiar with when their owners had camped in Berande 
compound and set up the poling-boats. Binu Charleyhugely 
interestedlent a handturning the heads around for 
identificationnoting the hatchet-strokesand remarking the 
distorted expressions. The Poonga-Poonga men gloated as usualand 
as usual the Tahitians were shocked and angryseveral of them 
cursing and muttering in undertones. So angry was Matapuuthat he 
strode suddenly over to the fire-tender and kicked him in the ribs
whereupon the old savage emitted an appalling squealpig-like in 
its wild-animal fearand fell face downward in the ashes and lay 
quivering in momentary expectation of death. 
Other headsthoroughly sun-dried and smoke-curedwere found in 
abundancebutwith two exceptionsthey were the heads of blacks. 
So this was the manner of hunting that went on in the dark and evil 
forestSheldon thoughtas he regarded them. The atmosphere of 
the place was sickeningyet he could not forbear to pause before 
one of Binu Charley's finds. 
Me savvee black Mary, me savvee white Mary,quoth Binu Charley. 
Me no savvee that fella Mary. What name belong him?
Sheldon looked. Ancient and witheredblackened by many years of 
the smoke of the devil-devil housenevertheless the shrunken
mummy-like face was unmistakably Chinese. How it had come there 
was the mystery. It was a woman's headand he had never heard of 
a Chinese woman in the history of the Solomons. From the ears hung 
two-inch-long ear-ringsand at Sheldon's direction the Binu man 
rubbed away the accretions of smoke and dirtand from under his 
fingers appeared the polished green of jadethe sheen of pearl
and the warm red of Oriental gold. The other headequally 
ancientwas a white man'sas the heavy blond moustachetwisted 
and askew on the shrivelled upper lipgave sufficient 
advertisement; and Sheldon wondered what forgotten beche-de-mer 
fisherman or sandalwood trader had gone to furnish that ghastly 
trophy. 
Telling Binu Charley to remove the ear-ringsand directing the 
Poonga-Poonga men to carry out the old fire-tenderSheldon cleared 
the devil-devil house and set fire to it. Soon every house was 
blazing merrilywhile the ancient fire-tender sat upright in the 
sunshine blinking at the destruction of his village. From the 
heights abovewhere were evidently other villagescame the 
booming of drums and a wild blowing of war-conchs; but Sheldon had 
dared all he cared to with his small following. Besideshis 
mission was accomplished. Every member of Tudor's expedition was 
accounted for; and it was a longdark way out of the head-hunters' 
country. Releasing their two prisonerswho leaped away like 
startled deerthey plunged down the steep path into the steaming 
jungle. 
Joanstill shocked by what she had seenwalked on in front of 
Sheldonsubdued and silent. At the end of half an hour she turned 
to him with a wan smile and said
I don't think I care to visit the head-hunters any more. It's 
adventure, I know; but there is such a thing as having too much of 
a good thing. Riding around the plantation will henceforth be good 
enough for me, or perhaps salving another Martha; but the bushmen 
of Guadalcanar need never worry for fear that I shall visit them 
again. I shall have nightmares for months to come, I know I shall. 
Ugh!--the horrid beasts!
That night found them back in camp with Tudorwhowhile improved
would still have to be carried down on a stretcher. The swelling 
of the Poonga-Poonga man's shoulder was going down slowlybut 
Arahu still limped on his thorn-poisoned foot. 
Two days later they rejoined the boats at Carli; and at high noon 
of the third daytravelling with the current and shooting the 
rapidsthe expedition arrived at Berande. Joanwith a sigh
unbuckled her revolver-belt and hung it on the nail in the livingroom
while Sheldonwho had been lurking about for the sheer joy 
of seeing her perform that particular home-coming actsighedtoo
with satisfaction. But the home-coming was not all joy to himfor 
Joan set about nursing Tudorand spent much time on the veranda 
where he lay in the hammock under the mosquito-netting. 
CHAPTER XXVI--BURNING DAYLIGHT 
The ten days of Tudor's convalescence that followed were peaceful 
days on Berande. The work of the plantation went on like clockwork. 
With the crushing of the premature outbreak of Gogoomy and 
his followingall insubordination seemed to have vanished. Twenty 
more of the old-time boystheir term of service upwere carried 
away by the Marthaand the fresh stock of labourtreated fairly
was proving of excellent quality. As Sheldon rode about the 
plantationacknowledging to himself the comfort and convenience of 
a horse and wondering why he had not thought of getting one 
himselfhe pondered the various improvements for which Joan was 
responsible--the splendid Poonga-Poonga recruits; the fruits and 
vegetables; the Martha herselfsnatched from the sea for a song 
and earning money hand over fist despite old Kinross's slow and 
safe method of running her; and Berandeonce more financially 
secureapproaching each day nearer the dividend-paying timeand 
growing each day as the black toilers cleared the bushcut the 
cane-grassand planted more cocoanut palms. 
In these and a thousand ways Sheldon was made aware of how much he 
was indebted for material prosperity to Joan--to the slender
level-browed girl with romance shining out of her gray eyes and 
adventure shouting from the long-barrelled Colt's on her hipwho 
had landed on the beach that piping galealong with her stalwart 
Tahitian crewand who had entered his bungalow to hang with boy's 
hands her revolver-belt and Baden-Powell hat on the nail by the 
billiard table. He forgot all the early exasperationsremembering 
only her charms and sweetnesses and glorying much in the traits he 
at first had disliked most--her boyishness and adventurousnessher 
delight to swim and risk the sharksher desire to go recruiting
her love of the sea and shipsher sharp authoritative words when 
she launched the whale-boat andwith firestick in one hand and 
dynamite-stick in the otherdeparted with her picturesque crew to 
shoot fish in the Balesuna; her super-innocent disdain for the 
commonest conventionsher juvenile joy in argumenther 
flutteringwild-bird love of freedom and mad passion for 
independence. All this he now lovedand he no longer desired to 
tame and hold herthough the paradox was the winning of her 
without the taming and the holding. 
There were times when he was dizzy with thought of her and love of 
herwhen he would stop his horse and with closed eyes picture her 
as he had seen her that first dayin the stern-sheets of the 
whale-boatdashing madly in to shore and marching belligerently 
along his veranda to remark that it was pretty hospitality this 
letting strangers sink or swim in his front yard. And as he opened 
his eyes and urged his horse onwardhe would ponder for the ten 
thousandth time how possibly he was ever to hold her when she was 
so wild and bird-like that she was bound to flutter out and away 
from under his hand. 
It was patent to Sheldon that Tudor had become interested in Joan. 
That convalescent visitor practically lived on the verandathough
while preposterously weak and shaky in the legshe had for some 
time insisted on coming in to join them at the table at meals. The 
first warning Sheldon had of the other's growing interest in the 
girl was when Tudor eased down and finally ceased pricking him with 
his habitual sharpness of quip and speech. This cessation of 
verbal sparring was like the breaking off of diplomatic relations 
between countries at the beginning of warandonce Sheldon's 
suspicions were arousedhe was not long in finding other 
confirmations. Tudor too obviously joyed in Joan's presencetoo 
obviously laid himself out to amuse and fascinate her with his own 
glorious and adventurous personality. Oftenafter his morning 
ride over the plantationor coming in from the store or from 
inspection of the copra-dryingSheldon found the pair of them 
together on the verandaJoan listeningintent and excitedand 
Tudor deep in some recital of personal adventure at the ends of the 
earth. 
Sheldon noticedtoothe way Tudor looked at her and followed her 
about with his eyesand in those eyes he noted a certain hungry 
lookand on the face a certain wistful expression; and he wondered 
if on his own face he carried a similar involuntary advertisement. 
He was sure of several things: firstthat Tudor was not the right 
man for Joan and could not possibly make her permanently happy; 
nextthat Joan was too sensible a girl really to fall in love with 
a man of such superficial stamp; andfinallythat Tudor would 
blunder his love-making somehow. And at the same timewith true 
lover's anxietySheldon feared that the other might somehow fail 
to blunderand win the girl with purely fortuitous and successful 
meretricious show. But of the one thing Sheldon was sure: Tudor 
had no intimate knowledge of her and was unaware of how vital in 
her was her wildness and love of independence. That was where he 
would blunder--in the catching and the holding of her. And then
in spite of all his certitudeSheldon could not forbear wondering 
if his theories of Joan might not be wrongand if Tudor was not 
going the right way about after all. 
The situation was very unsatisfactory and perplexing. Sheldon 
played the difficult part of waiting and looking onwhile his 
rival devoted himself energetically to reaching out and grasping at 
the fluttering prize. ThenagainTudor had such an irritating 
way about him. It had become quite elusive and intangiblenow 
that he had tacitly severed diplomatic relations; but Sheldon 
sensed what he deemed a growing antagonism and promptly magnified 
it through the jealous lenses of his own lover's eyes. The other 
was an interloper. He did not belong to Berandeand now that he 
was well and strong again it was time for him to go. Instead of 
whichand despite the calling in of the mail steamer bound for 
SydneyTudor had settled himself down comfortablyresumed 
swimmingwent dynamiting fish with Joanspent hours with her 
hunting pigeonstrapping crocodilesand at target practice with 
rifle and revolver. 
But there were certain traditions of hospitality that prevented 
Sheldon from breathing a hint that it was time for his guest to 
take himself off. And in similar fashionfeeling that it was not 
playing the gamehe fought down the temptation to warn Joan. Had 
he known anythingnot too seriousto Tudor's detrimenthe would 
have been unable to utter it; but the worst of it was that he knew 
nothing at all against the man. That was the confounded part of 
itand sometimes he was so baffled and overwrought by his feelings 
that he assumed a super-judicial calm and assured himself that his 
dislike of Tudor was a matter of unsubstantial prejudice and 
jealousy. 
Outwardlyhe maintained a calm and smiling aspect. The work of 
the plantation went on. The Martha and the Flibberty-Gibbet came 
and wentas did all the miscellany of coasting craft that dropped 
in to wait for a breeze and have a gossipa drink or twoand a 
game of billiards. Satan kept the compound free of niggers. 
Boucher came down regularly in his whale-boat to pass Sunday. 
Twice a dayat breakfast and dinnerJoan and Sheldon and Tudor 
met amicably at tableand the evenings were as amicably spent on 
the veranda. 
And then it happened. Tudor made his blunder. Never divining 
Joan's fluttering wildnessher blind hatred of restraint and 
compulsionher abhorrence of mastery by anotherand mistaking the 
warmth and enthusiasm in her eyes (aroused by his latest tale) for 
something tender and acquiescenthe drew her to himlaid a 
forcible detaining arm about her waistand misapprehended her 
frantic revolt for an exhibition of maidenly reluctance. It 
occurred on the verandaafter breakfastand Sheldonwithin
pondering a Sydney wholesaler's catalogue and making up his orders 
for next steamer-dayheard the sharp exclamation of Joanfollowed 
by the equally sharp impact of an open hand against a cheek. 
Jerking free from the arm that was all distasteful compulsionJoan 
had slapped Tudor's face resoundingly and with far more vim and 
weight than when she had cuffed Gogoomy. 
Sheldon had half-started upthen controlled himself and sunk back 
in his chairso that by the time Joan entered the door his 
composure was recovered. Her right fore-arm was clutched tightly 
in her left handwhile the white cheekscentred with the spots of 
flaming redreminded him of the time he had first seen her angry. 
He hurt my arm,she blurted outin reply to his look of inquiry. 
He smiled involuntarily. It was so like herso like the boy she 
wasto come running to complain of the physical hurt which had 
been done her. She was certainly not a woman versed in the ways of 
man and in the ways of handling man. The resounding slap she had 
given Tudor seemed still echoing in Sheldon's earsand as he 
looked at the girl before him crying out that her arm was hurthis 
smile grew broader. 
It was the smile that did itconvicting Joan in her own eyes of 
the silliness of her cry and sending over her face the most amazing 
blush he had ever seen. Throatcheeksand forehead flamed with 
the rush of the shamed blood. 
He--he--she attempted to vindicate her deeper indignationthen 
whirled abruptly away and passed out the rear door and down the 
steps. 
Sheldon sat and mused. He was a trifle angryand the more he 
dwelt upon the happening the angrier he grew. If it had been any 
woman except Joan it would have been amusing. But Joan was the 
last woman in the world to attempt to kiss forcibly. The thing 
smacked of the back stairs anyway--a sordid little comedy perhaps
but to have tried it on Joan was nothing less than sacrilege. The 
man should have had better sense. ThentooSheldon was 
personally aggrieved. He had been filched of something that he 
felt was almost hisand his lover's jealousy was rampant at 
thought of this forced familiarity. 
It was while in this mood that the screen door banged loudly behind 
the heels of Tudorwho strode into the room and paused before him. 
Sheldon was unpreparedthough it was very apparent that the other 
was furious. 
Well?Tudor demanded defiantly. 
And on the instant speech rushed to Sheldon's lips. 
I hope you won't attempt anything like it again, that's all-except 
that I shall be only too happy any time to extend to you the 
courtesy of my whale-boat. It will land you in Tulagi in a few 
hours.
As if that would settle it,was the retort. 
I don't understand,Sheldon said simply. 
Then it is because you don't wish to understand.
Still I don't understand,Sheldon said in steadylevel tones. 
All that is clear to me is that you are exaggerating your own 
blunder into something serious.
Tudor grinned maliciously and replied
It would seem that you are doing the exaggerating, inviting me to 
leave in your whale-boat. It is telling me that Berande is not big 
enough for the pair of us. Now let me tell you that the Solomon 
Islands is not big enough for the pair of us. This thing's got to 
be settled between us, and it may as well be settled right here and 
now.
I can understand your fire-eating manners as being natural to 
you,Sheldon went on wearilybut why you should try them on me 
is what I can't comprehend. You surely don't want to quarrel with 
me.
I certainly do.
But what in heaven's name for?
Tudor surveyed him with withering disgust. 
You haven't the soul of a louse. I suppose any man could make 
love to your wife--
But I have no wife,Sheldon interrupted. 
Then you ought to have. The situation is outrageous. You might 
at least marry her, as I am honourably willing to do.
For the first time Sheldon's rising anger boiled over. 
You--he began violentlythen abruptly caught control of himself 
and went on soothinglyyou'd better take a drink and think it 
over. That's my advice to you. Of course, when you do get cool, 
after talking to me in this fashion you won't want to stay on any 
longer, so while you're getting that drink I'll call the boat'screw 
and launch a boat. You'll be in Tulagi by eight this 
evening.
He turned toward the dooras if to put his words into execution
but the other caught him by the shoulder and twirled him around. 
Look here, Sheldon, I told you the Solomons were too small for the 
pair of us, and I meant it.
Is that an offer to buy Berande, lock, stock, and barrel?Sheldon 
queried. 
No, it isn't. It's an invitation to fight.
But what the devil do you want to fight with me for?Sheldon's 
irritation was growing at the other's persistence. "I've no 
quarrel with you. And what quarrel can you have with me? I have 
never interfered with you. You were my guest. Miss Lackland is my 
partner. If you saw fit to make love to herand somehow failed to 
succeedwhy should you want to fight with me? This is the 
twentieth centurymy dear fellowand duelling went out of fashion 
before you and I were born." 
You began the row,Tudor doggedly asserted. "You gave me to 
understand that it was time for me to go. You fired me out of your 
housein short. And then you have the cheek to want to know why I 
am starting the row. It won't doI tell you. You started itand 
I am going to see it through." 
Sheldon smiled tolerantly and proceeded to light a cigarette. But 
Tudor was not to be turned aside. 
You started this row,he urged. 
There isn't any row. It takes two to make a row, and I, for one, 
refuse to have anything to do with such tomfoolery.
You started it, I say, and I'll tell you why you started it.
I fancy you've been drinking,Sheldon interposed. "It's the only 
explanation I can find for your unreasonableness." 
And I'll tell you why you started it. It wasn't silliness on your 
part to exaggerate this little trifle of love-making into something 
serious. I was poaching on your preserves, and you wanted to get 
rid of me. It was all very nice and snug here, you and the girl, 
until I came along. And now you're jealous--that's it, jealousy-and 
want me out of it. But I won't go.
Then stay on by all means. I won't quarrel with you about it. 
Make yourself comfortable. Stay for a year, if you wish.
She's not your wife,Tudor continuedas though the other had not 
spoken. "A fellow has the right to make love to her unless she's 
your--wellperhaps it was an error after alldue to ignorance
perfectly excusableon my part. I might have seen it with half an 
eye if I'd listened to the gossip on the beach. All Guvutu and 
Tulagi were laughing about it. I was a fooland I certainly made 
the mistake of taking the situation on its assumed innocent facevalue." 
So angry was Sheldon becoming that the face and form of the other 
seemed to vibrate and oscillate before his eyes. Yet outwardly 
Sheldon was calm and apparently weary of the discussion. 
Please keep her out of the conversation,he said. 
But why should I?was the demand. "The pair of you trapped me 
into making a fool of myself. How was I to know that everything 
was not all right? You and she acted as if everything were on the 
square. But my eyes are open now. Whyshe played the outraged 
wife to perfectionslapped the transgressor and fled to you. 
Pretty good proof of what all the beach has been saying. Partners
eh?--a business partnership? Gammon my eyethat's what it is." 
Then it was that Sheldon struck outcoolly and deliberatelywith 
all the strength of his armand Tudorcaught on the jawfell 
sidewayscrumpling as he did so and crushing a chair to kindling 
wood beneath the weight of his falling body. He pulled himself 
slowly to his feetbut did not offer to rush. 
Now will you fight?Tudor said grimly. 
Sheldon laughedand for the first time with true spontaneity. The 
intrinsic ridiculousness of the situation was too much for his 
sense of humour. He made as if to repeat the blowbut Tudor
white of facewith arms hanging resistlessly at his sidesoffered 
no defence. 
I don't mean a fight with fists,he said slowly. "I mean to a 
finishto the death. You're a good shot with revolver and rifle. 
So am I. That's the way we'll settle it." 
You have gone clean mad. You are a lunatic.
No, I'm not,Tudor retorted. "I'm a man in love. And once again 
I ask you to go outside and settle itwith any weapons you 
choose." 
Sheldon regarded him for the first time with genuine seriousness
wondering what strange maggots could be gnawing in his brain to 
drive him to such unusual conduct. 
But men don't act this way in real life,Sheldon remarked. 
You'll find I'm pretty real before you're done with me. I'm going 
to kill you to-day.
Bosh and nonsense, man.This time Sheldon had lost his temper 
over the superficial aspects of the situation. "Bosh and nonsense
that's all it is. Men don't fight duels in the twentieth century. 
It's--it's antediluvianI tell you." 
Speaking of Joan--
Please keep her name out of it,Sheldon warned him. 
I will, if you'll fight.
Sheldon threw up his arms despairingly. 
Speaking of Joan--
Look out,Sheldon warned again. 
Oh, go ahead, knock me down. But that won't close my mouth. You 
can knock me down all day, but as fast as I get to my feet I'll 
speak of Joan again. Now will you fight?
Listen to me, Tudor,Sheldon beganwith an effort at 
decisiveness. "I am not used to taking from men a tithe of what 
I've already taken from you." 
You'll take a lot more before the day's out,was the answer. "I 
tell youyou simply must fight. I'll give you a fair chance to 
kill mebut I'll kill you before the day's out. This isn't 
civilization. It's the Solomon Islandsand a pretty primitive 
proposition for all that. King Edward and law and order are 
represented by the Commissioner at Tulagi and an occasional 
visiting gunboat. And two men and one woman is an equally 
primitive proposition. We'll settle it in the good old primitive 
way." 
As Sheldon looked at him the thought came to his mind that after 
all there might be something in the other's wild adventures over 
the earth. It required a man of that calibrea man capable of 
obtruding a duel into orderly twentieth century lifeto find such 
wild adventures. 
There's only one way to stop me,Tudor went on. "I can't insult 
you directlyI know. You are too easy-goingor cowardlyor 
bothfor that. But I can narrate for you the talk of the beach-ah
that grinds youdoesn't it? I can tell you what the beach has 
to say about you and this young girl running a plantation under a 
business partnership." 
Stop!Sheldon criedfor the other was beginning to vibrate and 
oscillate before his eyes. "You want a duel. I'll give it to 
you." Then his common-sense and dislike for the ridiculous 
asserted themselvesand he addedBut it's absurd, impossible.
Joan and David--partners, eh? Joan and David--partners,Tudor 
began to iterate and reiterate in a malicious and scornful chant. 
For heaven's sake keep quiet, and I'll let you have your way,
Sheldon cried. "I never saw a fool so bent on his folly. What 
kind of a duel shall it be? There are no seconds. What weapons 
shall we use?" 
Immediately Tudor's monkey-like impishness left himand he was 
once more the coolself-possessed man of the world. 
I've often thought that the ideal duel should be somewhat 
different from the conventional one,he said. "I've fought 
several of that sortyou know--" 
French ones,Sheldon interrupted. 
Call them that. But speaking of this ideal duel, here it is. No 
seconds, of course, and no onlookers. The two principals alone are 
necessary. They may use any weapons they please, from revolvers 
and rifles to machine guns and pompoms. They start a mile apart, 
and advance on each other, taking advantage of cover, retreating, 
circling, feinting--anything and everything permissible. In short, 
the principals shall hunt each other--
Like a couple of wild Indians?
Precisely,cried Tudordelighted. "You've got the idea. And 
Berande is just the placeand this is just the right time. Miss 
Lackland will be taking her siestaand she'll think we are. We've 
got two hours for it before she wakes. So hurry up and come on. 
You start out from the Balesuna and I start from the Berande. 
Those two rivers are the boundaries of the plantationaren't they? 
Very well. The field of the duel will be the plantation. Neither 
principal must go outside its boundaries. Are you satisfied?" 
Quite. But have you any objections if I leave some orders?
Not at all,Tudor acquiescedthe pink of courtesy now that his 
wish had been granted. 
Sheldon clapped his handsand the running house-boy hurried away 
to bring back Adamu Adam and Noa Noah. 
Listen,Sheldon said to them. "This man and mewe have one big 
fight to-day. Maybe he die. Maybe I die. If he dieall right. 
If I dieyou two look after Missie Lackalanna. You take rifles
and you look after her daytime and night-time. If she want to talk 
with Mr. Tudorall right. If she not want to talkyou make him 
keep away. Savvee?" 
They grunted and nodded. They had had much to do with white men
and had learned never to question the strange ways of the strange 
breed. If these two saw fit to go out and kill each otherthat 
was their business and not the business of the islanderswho took 
orders from them. They stepped to the gun-rackand each picked a 
rifle. 
Better all Tahitian men have rifles,suggested Adamu Adam. 
Maybe big trouble come.
All right, you take them,Sheldon answeredbusy with issuing the 
ammunition. 
They went to the door and down the stepscarrying the eight rifles 
to their quarters. Tudorwith cartridge-belts for rifle and 
pistol strapped around himrifle in handstood impatiently 
waiting. 
Come on, hurry up; we're burning daylight,he urgedas Sheldon 
searched after extra clips for his automatic pistol. 
Together they passed down the steps and out of the compound to the 
beachwhere they turned their backs to each otherand each 
proceeded toward his destinationtheir rifles in the hollows of 
their armsTudor walking toward the Berande and Sheldon toward the 
Balesuna. 
CHAPTER XXVII--MODERN DUELLING 
Barely had Sheldon reached the Balesunawhen he heard the faint 
report of a distant rifle and knew it was the signal of Tudor
giving notice that he had reached the Berandeturned aboutand 
was coming back. Sheldon fired his rifle into the air in answer
and in turn proceeded to advance. He moved as in a dreamabsentmindedly 
keeping to the open beach. The thing was so preposterous 
that he had to struggle to realize itand he reviewed in his mind 
the conversation with Tudortrying to find some clue to the 
common-sense of what he was doing. He did not want to kill Tudor. 
Because that man had blundered in his love-making was no reason 
that heSheldonshould take his life. Then what was it all 
about? Truethe fellow had insulted Joan by his subsequent 
remarks and been knocked down for itbut because he had knocked 
him down was no reason that he should now try to kill him. 
In this fashion he covered a quarter of the distance between the 
two riverswhen it dawned upon him that Tudor was not on the beach 
at all. Of course not. He was advancingaccording to the terms 
of the agreementin the shelter of the cocoanut trees. Sheldon 
promptly swerved to the left to seek similar shelterwhen the 
faint crack of a rifle came to his earsand almost immediately the 
bulletstriking the hard sand a hundred feet beyond him
ricochetted and whined onward on a second flightconvincing him 
thatpreposterous and unreal as it wasit was nevertheless sober 
fact. It had been intended for him. Yet even then it was hard to 
believe. He glanced over the familiar landscape and at the sea 
dimpling in the light but steady breeze. From the direction of 
Tulagi he could see the white sails of a schooner laying a tack 
across toward Berande. Down the beach a horse was grazingand he 
idly wondered where the others were. The smoke rising from the 
copra-drying caught his eyeswhich roved on over the barracksthe 
tool-housesthe boat- shedsand the bungalowand came to rest on 
Joan's little grass house in the corner of the compound. 
Keeping now to the shelter of the treeshe went forward another 
quarter of a mile. If Tudor had advanced with equal speed they 
should have come together at that pointand Sheldon concluded that 
the other was circling. The difficulty was to locate him. The 
rows of treesrunning at right anglesenabled him to see along 
only one narrow avenue at a time. His enemy might be coming along 
the next avenueor the nextto right or left. He might be a 
hundred feet away or half a mile. Sheldon plodded onand decided 
that the old stereotyped duel was far simpler and easier than this 
protracted hide-and-seek affair. Hetootried circlingin the 
hope of cutting the other's circle; butwithout catching a glimpse 
of himhe finally emerged upon a fresh clearing where the young 
treeswaist-highafforded little shelter and less hiding. Just 
as he emergedstepping out a pacea rifle cracked to his right
and though he did not hear the bullet in passingthe thud of it 
came to his ears when it struck a palm-trunk farther on. 
He sprang back into the protection of the larger trees. Twice he 
had exposed himself and been fired atwhile he had failed to catch 
a single glimpse of his antagonist. A slow anger began to burn in 
him. It was deucedly unpleasanthe decidedthis being peppered 
at; and nonsensical as it really wasit was none the less deadly 
serious. There was no avoiding the issueno firing in the air and 
getting over with it as in the old-fashioned duel. This mutual 
man-hunt must keep up until one got the other. And if one 
neglected a chance to get the otherthat increased the other's 
chance to get him. There could be no false sentiment about it. 
Tudor had been a cunning devil when he proposed this sort of duel
Sheldon concludedas he began to work along cautiously in the 
direction of the last shot. 
When he arrived at the spotTudor was goneand only his footprints 
remainedpointing out the course he had taken into the 
depths of the plantation. Onceten minutes laterhe caught a 
glimpse of Tudora hundred yards awaycrossing the same avenue as 
himself but going in the opposite direction. His rifle half-leaped 
to his shoulderbut the other was gone. More in whim than in hope 
of resultgrinning to himself as he did soSheldon raised his 
automatic pistol and in two seconds sent eight shots scattering 
through the trees in the direction in which Tudor had disappeared. 
Wishing he had a shot-gunSheldon dropped to the ground behind a 
treeslipped a fresh clip up the hollow butt of the pistolthrew 
a cartridge into the chambershoved the safety catch into place
and reloaded the empty clip. 
It was but a short time after that that Tudor tried the same trick 
on himthe bullets pattering about him like spiteful rain
thudding into the palm trunksor glancing off in whining 
ricochets. The last bullet of allmaking a double ricochet from 
two different trees and losing most of its momentumstruck Sheldon 
a sharp blow on the forehead and dropped at his feet. He was 
partly stunned for the momentbut on investigation found no 
greater harm than a nasty lump that soon rose to the size of a 
pigeon's egg. 
The hunt went on. Oncecoming to the edge of the grove near the 
bungalowhe saw the house-boys and the cookclustered on the back 
veranda and peering curiously among the treestalking and laughing 
with one another in their queer falsetto voices. Another time he 
came upon a working-gang busy at hoeing weeds. They scarcely 
noticed him when he came upthough they knew thoroughly well what 
was going on. It was no affair of theirs that the enigmatical 
white men should be out trying to kill each otherand whatever 
interest in the proceedings might be theirs they were careful to 
conceal it from Sheldon. He ordered them to continue hoeing weeds 
in a distant and out-of-the-way cornerand went on with the 
pursuit of Tudor. 
Tiring of the endless circlingSheldon tried once more to advance 
directly on his foebut the latter was too craftytaking 
advantage of his boldness to fire a couple of shots at himand 
slipping away on some changed and continually changing course. For 
an hour they dodged and turned and twisted back and forth and 
aroundand hunted each other among the orderly palms. They caught 
fleeting glimpses of each other and chanced flying shots which were 
without result. On a grassy shelter behind a treeSheldon came 
upon where Tudor had rested and smoked a cigarette. The pressed 
grass showed where he had sat. To one side lay the cigarette stump 
and the charred match which had lighted it. In front lay a 
scattering of bright metallic fragments. Sheldon recognized their 
significance. Tudor was notching his steel-jacketed bulletsor 
cutting them bluntso that they would spread on striking--in 
shorthe was making them into the vicious dum-dum prohibited in 
modern warfare. Sheldon knew now what would happen to him if a 
bullet struck his body. It would leave a tiny hole where it 
enteredbut the hole where it emerged would be the size of a 
saucer. 
He decided to give up the pursuitand lay down in the grass
protected right and left by the row of palmswith on either hand 
the long avenue extending. This he could watch. Tudor would have 
to come to him or else there would be no termination of the affair. 
He wiped the sweat from his face and tied the handkerchief around 
his neck to keep off the stinging gnats that lurked in the grass. 
Never had he felt so great a disgust for the thing called 
adventure.Joan had been bad enoughwith her Baden-Powell and 
long-barrelled Colt's; but here was this newcomer also looking for 
adventureand finding it in no other way than by lugging a peaceloving 
planter into an absurd and preposterous bush-whacking duel. 
If ever adventure was well damnedit was by Sheldonsweating in 
the windless grass and fighting gnatsthe while he kept close 
watch up and down the avenue. 
Then Tudor came. Sheldon happened to be looking in his direction 
at the moment he came into viewpeering quickly up and down the 
avenue before he stepped into the open. Midway he stoppedas if 
debating what course to pursue. He made a splendid markfacing 
his concealed enemy at two hundred yards' distance. Sheldon aimed 
at the centre of his chestthen deliberately shifted the aim to 
his right shoulderandwith the thoughtThat will put him out 
of business,pulled the trigger. The bulletdriving with 
momentum sufficient to perforate a man's body a mile distant
struck Tudor with such force as to pivot himwhirling him half 
around by the shock of its impact and knocking him down. 
'Hope I haven't killed the beggar,Sheldon muttered aloud
springing to his feet and running forward. 
A hundred feet away all anxiety on that score was relieved by 
Tudorwho made shift with his left handand from his automatic 
pistol hurled a rain of bullets all around Sheldon. The latter 
dodged behind a palm trunkcounting the shotsand when the eighth 
had been fired he rushed in on the wounded man. He kicked the 
pistol out of the other's handand then sat down on him in order 
to keep him down. 
Be quiet,he said. "I've got youso there's no use struggling." 
Tudor still attempted to struggle and to throw him off. 
Keep quiet, I tell you,Sheldon commanded. "I'm satisfied with 
the outcomeand you've got to be. So you might as well give in 
and call this affair closed." 
Tudor reluctantly relaxed. 
Rather funny, isn't it, these modern duels?Sheldon grinned down 
at him as he removed his weight. "Not a bit dignified. If you'd 
struggled a moment longer I'd have rubbed your face in the earth. 
I've a good mind to do it anywayjust to teach you that duelling 
has gone out of fashion. Now let us see to your injuries." 
You only got me that last,Tudor grunted sullenlylying in 
ambush like--
Like a wild Indian. Precisely. You've caught the idea, old man.
Sheldon ceased his mocking and stood up. "You lie there quietly 
until I send back some of the boys to carry you in. You're not 
seriously hurtand it's lucky for you I didn't follow your 
example. If you had been struck with one of your own bulletsa 
carriage and pair would have been none too large to drive through 
the hole it would have made. As it isyou're drilled clean--a 
nice little perforation. All you need is antiseptic washing and 
dressingand you'll be around in a month. Now take it easyand 
I'll send a stretcher for you." 
CHAPTER XXVIII--CAPITULATION 
When Sheldon emerged from among the trees he found Joan waiting at 
the compound gateand he could not fail to see that she was 
visibly gladdened at the sight of him. 
I can't tell you how glad I am to see you,was her greeting. 
What's become of Tudor? That last flutter of the automatic wasn't 
nice to listen to. Was it you or Tudor?
So you know all about it,he answered coolly. "Wellit was 
Tudorbut he was doing it left-handed. He's down with a hole in 
his shoulder." He looked at her keenly. "Disappointingisn't 
it?" he drawled. 
How do you mean?
Why, that I didn't kill him.
But I didn't want him killed just because he kissed me,she 
cried. 
Oh, he did kiss you!Sheldon retortedin evident surprise. "I 
thought you said he hurt your arm." 
One could call it a kiss, though it was only on the end of the 
nose.She laughed at the recollection. "But I paid him back for 
that myself. I boxed his face for him. And he did hurt my arm. 
It's black and blue. Look at it." 
She pulled up the loose sleeve of her blouseand he saw the 
bruised imprints of two fingers. 
Just then a gang of blacks came out from among the trees carrying 
the wounded man on a rough stretcher. 
Romantic, isn't it?Sheldon sneeredfollowing Joan's startled 
gaze. "And now I'll have to play surgeon and doctor him up. 
Funnythis twentieth-century duelling. First you drill a hole in 
a manand next you set about plugging the hole up." 
They had stepped aside to let the stretcher passand Tudorwho 
had heard the remarklifted himself up on the elbow of his sound 
arm and said with a defiant grin
If you'd got one of mine you'd have had to plug with a dinnerplate.
Oh, you wretch!Joan cried. "You've been cutting your bullets." 
It was according to agreement,Tudor answered. "Everything went. 
We could have used dynamite if we wanted to." 
He's right,Sheldon assured heras they swung in behind. "Any 
weapon was permissible. I lay in the grass where he couldn't see 
meand bushwhacked him in truly noble fashion. That's what comes 
of having women on the plantation. And now it's antiseptics and 
drainage tubesI suppose. It's a nasty messand I'll have to 
read up on it before I tackle the job." 
I don't see that it's my fault,she began. "I couldn't help it 
because he kissed me. I never dreamed he would attempt it." 
We didn't fight for that reason. But there isn't time to explain. 
If you'll get dressings and bandages ready I'll look up 'gun-shot 
wounds' and see what's to be done.
Is he bleeding seriously?she asked. 
No; the bullet seems to have missed the important arteries. But 
that would have been a pickle.
Then there's no need to bother about reading up,Joan said. "And 
I'm just dying to hear what it was all about. The Apostle is lying 
becalmed inside the pointand her boats are out to wing. She'll 
be at anchor in five minutesand Doctor Welshmere is sure to be on 
board. So all we've got to do is to make Tudor comfortable. We'd 
better put him in your room under the mosquito-nettingand send a 
boat off to tell Dr. Welshmere to bring his instruments." 
An hour afterwardDr. Welshmere left the patient comfortable and 
attended toand went down to the beach to go on boardpromising 
to come back to dinner. Joan and Sheldonstanding on the veranda
watched him depart. 
I'll never have it in for the missionaries again since seeing them 
here in the Solomons,she saidseating herself in a steamerchair. 
She looked at Sheldon and began to laugh. 
That's right,he said. "It's the way I feelplaying the fool 
and trying to murder a guest." 
But you haven't told me what it was all about.
You,he answered shortly. 
Me? But you just said it wasn't.
Oh, it wasn't the kiss.He walked over to the railing and leaned 
against itfacing her. "But it was about you all the sameand I 
may as well tell you. You rememberI warned you long ago what 
would happen when you wanted to become a partner in Berande. Well
all the beach is gossiping about it; and Tudor persisted in 
repeating the gossip to me. So you see it won't do for you to stay 
on here under present conditions. It would be better if you went 
away." 
But I don't want to go away,she objected with rueful 
countenance. 
A chaperone, then--
No, nor a chaperone.
But you surely don't expect me to go around shooting every 
slanderer in the Solomons that opens his mouth?he demanded 
gloomily. 
No, nor that either,she answered with quick impulsiveness. 
I'll tell you what we'll do. We'll get married and put a stop to 
it all. There!
He looked at her in amazementand would have believed that she was 
making fun of him had it not been for the warm blood that suddenly 
suffused her cheeks. 
Do you mean that?he asked unsteadily. "Why?" 
To put a stop to all the nasty gossip of the beach. That's a 
pretty good reason, isn't it?
The temptation was strong enough and sudden enough to make him 
waverbut all the disgust came back to him that was his when he 
lay in the grass fighting gnats and cursing adventureand he 
answered
No; it is worse than no reason at all. I don't care to marry you 
as a matter of expedience--
You are the most ridiculous creature!she broke inwith a flash 
of her old-time anger. "You talk love and marriage to mevery 
much against my wishand go mooning around over the plantation 
week after week because you can't have meand look at me when you 
think I'm not noticing and when all the time I'm wondering when you 
had your last square meal because of the hungry look in your eyes
and make eyes at my revolver-belt hanging on a nailand fight 
duels about meand all the rest--and--and nowwhen I say I'll 
marry youyou do yourself the honour of refusing me." 
You can't make me any more ridiculous than I feel,he answered
rubbing the lump on his forehead reflectively. "And if this is the 
accepted romantic programme--a duel over a girland the girl 
rushing into the arms of the winner--whyI shall not make a bigger 
ass of myself by going in for it." 
I thought you'd jump at it,she confessedwith a naivete he 
could not but questionfor he thought he saw a roguish gleam in 
her eyes. 
My conception of love must differ from yours then,he said. "I 
should want a woman to marry me for love of meand not out of 
romantic admiration because I was lucky enough to drill a hole in a 
man's shoulder with smokeless powder. I tell you I am disgusted 
with this adventure tom-foolery and rot. I don't like it. Tudor 
is a sample of the adventure-kind--picking a quarrel with me and 
behaving like a monkeyinsisting on fighting with me--'to the 
death' he said. It was like a penny dreadful." 
She was biting her lipand though her eyes were cool and level
looking as everthe tell-tale angry red was in her cheeks. 
Of course, if you don't want to marry me--
But I do,he hastily interposed. 
Oh, you do--
But don't you see, little girl, I want you to love me,he hurried 
on. "Otherwiseit would be only half a marriage. I don't want 
you to marry me simply because by so doing a stop is put to the 
beach gossipnor do I want you to marry me out of some foolish 
romantic notion. I shouldn't want you . . . that way." 
Oh, in that case,she said with assumed deliberatenessand he 
could have sworn to the roguish gleamin that case, since you are 
willing to consider my offer, let me make a few remarks. In the 
first place, you needn't sneer at adventure when you are living it 
yourself; and you were certainly living it when I found you first, 
down with fever on a lonely plantation with a couple of hundred 
wild cannibals thirsting for your life. Then I came along--
And what with your arriving in a gale,he broke infresh from 
the wreck of the schooner, landing on the beach in a whale-boat 
full of picturesque Tahitian sailors, and coming into the bungalow 
with a Baden-Powell on your head, sea-boots on your feet, and a 
whacking big Colt's dangling on your hip--why, I am only too ready 
to admit that you were the quintessence of adventure.
Very good,she cried exultantly. "It's mere simple arithmetic-the 
adding of your adventure and my adventure together. So that's 
settledand you needn't jeer at adventure any more. NextI don't 
think there was anything romantic in Tudor's attempting to kiss me
nor anything like adventure in this absurd duel. But I do think
nowthat it was romantic for you to fall in love with me. And 
finallyand it is adding romance to romanceI think . . . I think 
I do love youDave--ohDave!" 
The last was a sighing dove-cry as he caught her up in his arms and 
pressed her to him. 
But I don't love you because you played the fool to-day,she 
whispered on his shoulder. "White men shouldn't go around killing 
each other." 
Then why do you love me?he questionedenthralled after the 
manner of all lovers in the everlasting query that for ever has 
remained unanswered. 
I don't know--just because I do, I guess. And that's all the 
satisfaction you gave me when we had that man-talk. But I have 
been loving you for weeks--during all the time you have been so 
deliciously and unobtrusively jealous of Tudor.
Yes, yes, go on,he urged breathlesslywhen she paused. 
I wondered when you'd break out, and because you didn't I loved 
you all the more. You were like Dad, and Von. You could hold 
yourself in check. You didn't make a fool of yourself.
Not until to-day,he suggested. 
Yes, and I loved you for that, too. It was about time. I began 
to think you were never going to bring up the subject again. And 
now that I have offered myself you haven't even accepted.
With both hands on her shoulders he held her at arm's-length from 
him and looked long into her eyesno longer cool but seemingly 
pervaded with a golden flush. The lids drooped and yet bravely did 
not droop as she returned his gaze. Then he fondly and solemnly 
drew her to him. 
And how about that hearth and saddle of your own?he askeda 
moment later. 
I well-nigh won to them. The grass house is my hearth, and the 
Martha my saddle, and--and look at all the trees I've planted, to 
say nothing of the sweet corn. And it's all your fault anyway. 
might never have loved you if you hadn't put the idea into my 
head.
There's the Nongassla coming in around the point with her boats 
out,Sheldon remarked irrelevantly. "And the Commissioner is on 
board. He's going down to San Cristoval to investigate that 
missionary killing. We're in luckI must say." 
I don't see where the luck comes in,she said dolefully. "We 
ought to have this evening all to ourselves just to talk things 
over. I've a thousand questions to ask you." 
And it wouldn't have been a man-talk either,she added. 
But my plan is better than that.He debated with himself a 
moment. "You seethe Commissioner is the one official in the 
islands who can give us a license. And--there's the luck of it--
Doctor Welshmere is here to perform the ceremony. We'll get 
married this evening." 
Joan recoiled from him in panictearing herself from his arms and 
going backward several steps. He could see that she was really 
frightened. 
I . . . I thought . . .she stammered. 
Thenslowlythe change came over herand the blood flooded into 
her face in the same amazing blush he had seen once before that 
day. Her coollevel-looking eyes were no longer level-looking nor 
coolbut warmly drooping and just unable to meet hisas she came 
toward him and nestled in the circle of his armssaying softly
almost in a whisper
I am ready,Dave." 
Footnotes: 
{1} Eaten. 
{2} Food. 
{3} Mary--beche-de-mer English for woman. 
{4} Ngari-ngari--literally "scratch-scratch"--a vegetable skinpoisoning 
thatwhile not seriousis decidedly uncomfortable. 
{5} Paddle